Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Sleeper Awakes
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Sleeper Awakes, by H.G. Wells
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • Title: The Sleeper Awakes
  • A Revised Edition of When the Sleeper Wakes
  • Author: H.G. Wells
  • Release Date: April 26, 2004 [EBook #12163]
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SLEEPER AWAKES ***
  • Produced by Paul Murray, Mary Meehan and the Online Distributed
  • Proofreading Team.
  • THE SLEEPER AWAKES
  • A Revised Edition of "When the Sleeper Wakes"
  • H.G. WELLS
  • 1899
  • PREFACE TO THE NEW EDITION
  • _When the Sleeper Wakes_, whose title I have now altered to _The Sleeper
  • Awakes_, was first published as a book in 1899 after a serial appearance
  • in the _Graphic_ and one or two American and colonial periodicals. It is
  • one of the most ambitious and least satisfactory of my books, and I have
  • taken the opportunity afforded by this reprinting to make a number of
  • excisions and alterations. Like most of my earlier work, it was written
  • under considerable pressure; there are marks of haste not only in the
  • writing of the latter part, but in the very construction of the story.
  • Except for certain streaks of a slovenliness which seems to be an almost
  • unavoidable defect in me, there is little to be ashamed of in the writing
  • of the opening portion; but it will be fairly manifest to the critic that
  • instead of being put aside and thought over through a leisurely
  • interlude, the ill-conceived latter part was pushed to its end. I was at
  • that time overworked, and badly in need of a holiday. In addition to
  • various necessary journalistic tasks, I had in hand another book, _Love
  • and Mr. Lewisham_, which had taken a very much stronger hold upon my
  • affections than this present story. My circumstances demanded that one or
  • other should be finished before I took any rest, and so I wound up the
  • Sleeper sufficiently to make it a marketable work, hoping to be able to
  • revise it before the book printers at any rate got hold of it. But
  • fortune was against me. I came back to England from Italy only to fall
  • dangerously ill, and I still remember the impotent rage and strain of my
  • attempt to put some sort of finish to my story of Mr. Lewisham, with my
  • temperature at a hundred and two. I couldn't endure the thought of
  • leaving that book a fragment. I did afterwards contrive to save it from
  • the consequences of that febrile spurt--_Love and Mr. Lewisham_ is indeed
  • one of my most carefully balanced books--but the Sleeper escaped me.
  • It is twelve years now since the Sleeper was written, and that young man
  • of thirty-one is already too remote for me to attempt any very drastic
  • reconstruction of his work. I have played now merely the part of an
  • editorial elder brother: cut out relentlessly a number of long tiresome
  • passages that showed all too plainly the fagged, toiling brain, the heavy
  • sluggish _driven_ pen, and straightened out certain indecisions at the
  • end. Except for that, I have done no more than hack here and there at
  • clumsy phrases and repetitions. The worst thing in the earlier version,
  • and the thing that rankled most in my mind, was the treatment of the
  • relations of Helen Wotton and Graham. Haste in art is almost always
  • vulgarisation, and I slipped into the obvious vulgarity of making what
  • the newspaper syndicates call a "love interest" out of Helen. There was
  • even a clumsy intimation that instead of going up in the flying-machine
  • to fight, Graham might have given in to Ostrog, and married Helen. I have
  • now removed the suggestion of these uncanny connubialities. Not the
  • slightest intimation of any sexual interest could in truth have arisen
  • between these two. They loved and kissed one another, but as a girl and
  • her heroic grandfather might love, and in a crisis kiss. I have found it
  • possible, without any very serious disarrangement, to clear all that
  • objectionable stuff out of the story, and so a little ease my conscience
  • on the score of this ungainly lapse. I have also, with a few strokes of
  • the pen, eliminated certain dishonest and regrettable suggestions that
  • the People beat Ostrog. My Graham dies, as all his kind must die, with no
  • certainty of either victory or defeat.
  • Who will win--Ostrog or the People? A thousand years hence that will
  • still be just the open question we leave to-day.
  • H.G. WELLS.
  • CONTENTS
  • I. INSOMNIA
  • II. THE TRANCE
  • III. THE AWAKENING
  • IV. THE SOUND OF A TUMULT
  • V. THE MOVING WAYS
  • VI. THE HALL OF THE ATLAS
  • VII. IN THE SILENT ROOMS
  • VIII. THE ROOF SPACES
  • IX. THE PEOPLE MARCH
  • X. THE BATTLE OF THE DARKNESS
  • XI. THE OLD MAN WHO KNEW EVERYTHING
  • XII. OSTROG
  • XIII. THE END OF THE OLD ORDER
  • XIV. FROM THE CROW'S NEST
  • XV. PROMINENT PEOPLE
  • XVI. THE MONOPLANE
  • XVII. THREE DAYS
  • XVIII. GRAHAM REMEMBERS
  • XIX. OSTROG'S POINT OF VIEW
  • XX. IN THE CITY WAYS
  • XXI. THE UNDER-SIDE
  • XXII. THE STRUGGLE IN THE COUNCIL HOUSE
  • XXIII. GRAHAM SPEAKS HIS WORD
  • XXIV. WHILE THE AEROPLANES WERE COMING
  • XXV. THE COMING OF THE AEROPLANES
  • THE SLEEPER AWAKES
  • CHAPTER I
  • INSOMNIA
  • One afternoon, at low water, Mr. Isbister, a young artist lodging at
  • Boscastle, walked from that place to the picturesque cove of Pentargen,
  • desiring to examine the caves there. Halfway down the precipitous path to
  • the Pentargen beach he came suddenly upon a man sitting in an attitude of
  • profound distress beneath a projecting mass of rock. The hands of this
  • man hung limply over his knees, his eyes were red and staring before him,
  • and his face was wet with tears.
  • He glanced round at Isbister's footfall. Both men were disconcerted,
  • Isbister the more so, and, to override the awkwardness of his involuntary
  • pause, he remarked, with an air of mature conviction, that the weather
  • was hot for the time of year.
  • "Very," answered the stranger shortly, hesitated a second, and added in a
  • colourless tone, "I can't sleep."
  • Isbister stopped abruptly. "No?" was all he said, but his bearing
  • conveyed his helpful impulse.
  • "It may sound incredible," said the stranger, turning weary eyes to
  • Isbister's face and emphasizing his words with a languid hand, "but I
  • have had no sleep--no sleep at all for six nights."
  • "Had advice?"
  • "Yes. Bad advice for the most part. Drugs. My nervous system.... They are
  • all very well for the run of people. It's hard to explain. I dare not
  • take ... sufficiently powerful drugs."
  • "That makes it difficult," said Isbister.
  • He stood helplessly in the narrow path, perplexed what to do. Clearly the
  • man wanted to talk. An idea natural enough under the circumstances,
  • prompted him to keep the conversation going. "I've never suffered from
  • sleeplessness myself," he said in a tone of commonplace gossip, "but in
  • those cases I have known, people have usually found something--"
  • "I dare make no experiments."
  • He spoke wearily. He gave a gesture of rejection, and for a space both
  • men were silent.
  • "Exercise?" suggested Isbister diffidently, with a glance from his
  • interlocutor's face of wretchedness to the touring costume he wore.
  • "That is what I have tried. Unwisely perhaps. I have followed the coast,
  • day after day--from New Quay. It has only added muscular fatigue to the
  • mental. The cause of this unrest was overwork--trouble. There was
  • something--"
  • He stopped as if from sheer fatigue. He rubbed his forehead with a lean
  • hand. He resumed speech like one who talks to himself.
  • "I am a lone wolf, a solitary man, wandering through a world in which I
  • have no part. I am wifeless--childless--who is it speaks of the childless
  • as the dead twigs on the tree of life? I am wifeless, childless--I could
  • find no duty to do. No desire even in my heart. One thing at last I set
  • myself to do.
  • "I said, I _will_ do this, and to do it, to overcome the inertia of this
  • dull body, I resorted to drugs. Great God, I've had enough of drugs! I
  • don't know if _you_ feel the heavy inconvenience of the body, its
  • exasperating demand of time from the mind--time--life! Live! We only live
  • in patches. We have to eat, and then comes the dull digestive
  • complacencies--or irritations. We have to take the air or else our
  • thoughts grow sluggish, stupid, run into gulfs and blind alleys. A
  • thousand distractions arise from within and without, and then comes
  • drowsiness and sleep. Men seem to live for sleep. How little of a man's
  • day is his own--even at the best! And then come those false friends,
  • those Thug helpers, the alkaloids that stifle natural fatigue and kill
  • rest--black coffee, cocaine--"
  • "I see," said Isbister.
  • "I did my work," said the sleepless man with a querulous intonation.
  • "And this is the price?"
  • "Yes."
  • For a little while the two remained without speaking.
  • "You cannot imagine the craving for rest that I feel--a hunger and
  • thirst. For six long days, since my work was done, my mind has been a
  • whirlpool, swift, unprogressive and incessant, a torrent of thoughts
  • leading nowhere, spinning round swift and steady--" He paused. "Towards
  • the gulf."
  • "You must sleep," said Isbister decisively, and with an air of a remedy
  • discovered. "Certainly you must sleep."
  • "My mind is perfectly lucid. It was never clearer. But I know I am
  • drawing towards the vortex. Presently--"
  • "Yes?"
  • "You have seen things go down an eddy? Out of the light of the day, out
  • of this sweet world of sanity--down--"
  • "But," expostulated Isbister.
  • The man threw out a hand towards him, and his eyes were wild, and his
  • voice suddenly high. "I shall kill myself. If in no other way--at the
  • foot of yonder dark precipice there, where the waves are green, and the
  • white surge lifts and falls, and that little thread of water trembles
  • down. There at any rate is ... sleep."
  • "That's unreasonable," said Isbister, startled at the man's hysterical
  • gust of emotion. "Drugs are better than that."
  • "There at any rate is sleep," repeated the stranger, not heeding him.
  • Isbister looked at him. "It's not a cert, you know," he remarked.
  • "There's a cliff like that at Lulworth Cove--as high, anyhow--and a
  • little girl fell from top to bottom. And lives to-day--sound and well."
  • "But those rocks there?"
  • "One might lie on them rather dismally through a cold night, broken bones
  • grating as one shivered, chill water splashing over you. Eh?"
  • Their eyes met. "Sorry to upset your ideals," said Isbister with a sense
  • of devil-may-careish brilliance. "But a suicide over that cliff (or any
  • cliff for the matter of that), really, as an artist--" He laughed. "It's
  • so damned amateurish."
  • "But the other thing," said the sleepless man irritably, "the other
  • thing. No man can keep sane if night after night--"
  • "Have you been walking along this coast alone?"
  • "Yes."
  • "Silly sort of thing to do. If you'll excuse my saying so. Alone! As you
  • say; body fag is no cure for brain fag. Who told you to? No wonder;
  • walking! And the sun on your head, heat, fag, solitude, all the day long,
  • and then, I suppose, you go to bed and try very hard--eh?"
  • Isbister stopped short and looked at the sufferer doubtfully.
  • "Look at these rocks!" cried the seated man with a sudden force of
  • gesture. "Look at that sea that has shone and quivered there for ever!
  • See the white spume rush into darkness under that great cliff. And this
  • blue vault, with the blinding sun pouring from the dome of it. It is your
  • world. You accept it, you rejoice in it. It warms and supports and
  • delights you. And for me--"
  • He turned his head and showed a ghastly face, bloodshot pallid eyes and
  • bloodless lips. He spoke almost in a whisper. "It is the garment of my
  • misery. The whole world ... is the garment of my misery."
  • Isbister looked at all the wild beauty of the sunlit cliffs about them
  • and back to that face of despair. For a moment he was silent.
  • He started, and made a gesture of impatient rejection. "You get a
  • night's sleep," he said, "and you won't see much misery out here. Take
  • my word for it."
  • He was quite sure now that this was a providential encounter. Only half
  • an hour ago he had been feeling horribly bored. Here was employment the
  • bare thought of which, was righteous self-applause. He took possession
  • forthwith. The first need of this exhausted being was companionship. He
  • flung himself down on the steeply sloping turf beside the motionless
  • seated figure, and threw out a skirmishing line of gossip.
  • His hearer lapsed into apathy; he stared dismally seaward, and spoke only
  • in answer to Isbister's direct questions--and not to all of those. But he
  • made no objection to this benevolent intrusion upon his despair.
  • He seemed even grateful, and when presently Isbister, feeling that his
  • unsupported talk was losing vigour, suggested that they should reascend
  • the steep and return towards Boscastle, alleging the view into Blackapit,
  • he submitted quietly. Halfway up he began talking to himself, and
  • abruptly turned a ghastly face on his helper. "What can be happening?" he
  • asked with a gaunt illustrative hand. "What can be happening? Spin, spin,
  • spin, spin. It goes round and round, round and round for evermore."
  • He stood with his hand circling.
  • "It's all right, old chap," said Isbister with the air of an old friend.
  • "Don't worry yourself. Trust to me,"
  • The man dropped his hand and turned again. They went over the brow and to
  • the headland beyond Penally, with the sleepless man gesticulating ever
  • and again, and speaking fragmentary things concerning his whirling brain.
  • At the headland they stood by the seat that looks into the dark mysteries
  • of Blackapit, and then he sat down. Isbister had resumed his talk
  • whenever the path had widened sufficiently for them to walk abreast. He
  • was enlarging upon the complex difficulty of making Boscastle Harbour in
  • bad weather, when suddenly and quite irrelevantly his companion
  • interrupted him again.
  • "My head is not like what it was," he said, gesticulating for want of
  • expressive phrases. "It's not like what it was. There is a sort of
  • oppression, a weight. No--not drowsiness, would God it were! It is like
  • a shadow, a deep shadow falling suddenly and swiftly across something
  • busy. Spin, spin into the darkness. The tumult of thought, the confusion,
  • the eddy and eddy. I can't express it. I can hardly keep my mind on
  • it--steadily enough to tell you."
  • He stopped feebly.
  • "Don't trouble, old chap," said Isbister. "I think I can understand. At
  • any rate, it don't matter very much just at present about telling me,
  • you know."
  • The sleepless man thrust his knuckles into his eyes and rubbed them.
  • Isbister talked for awhile while this rubbing continued, and then he had
  • a fresh idea. "Come down to my room," he said, "and try a pipe. I can
  • show you some sketches of this Blackapit. If you'd care?"
  • The other rose obediently and followed him down the steep.
  • Several times Isbister heard him stumble as they came down, and his
  • movements were slow and hesitating. "Come in with me," said
  • Isbister, "and try some cigarettes and the blessed gift of alcohol.
  • If you take alcohol?"
  • The stranger hesitated at the garden gate. He seemed no longer aware of
  • his actions. "I don't drink," he said slowly, coming up the garden path,
  • and after a moment's interval repeated absently, "No--I don't drink. It
  • goes round. Spin, it goes--spin--"
  • He stumbled at the doorstep and entered the room with the bearing of one
  • who sees nothing.
  • Then he sat down heavily in the easy chair, seemed almost to fall into
  • it. He leant forward with his brows on his hands and became motionless.
  • Presently he made a faint sound in his throat.
  • Isbister moved about the room with the nervousness of an inexperienced
  • host, making little remarks that scarcely required answering. He
  • crossed the room to his portfolio, placed it on the table and noticed
  • the mantel clock.
  • "I don't know if you'd care to have supper with me," he said with an
  • unlighted cigarette in his hand--his mind troubled with ideas of a
  • furtive administration of chloral. "Only cold mutton, you know, but
  • passing sweet. Welsh. And a tart, I believe." He repeated this after
  • momentary silence.
  • The seated man made no answer. Isbister stopped, match in hand,
  • regarding him.
  • The stillness lengthened. The match went out, the cigarette was put down
  • unlit. The man was certainly very still. Isbister took up the portfolio,
  • opened it, put it down, hesitated, seemed about to speak. "Perhaps," he
  • whispered doubtfully. Presently he glanced at the door and back to the
  • figure. Then he stole on tiptoe out of the room, glancing at his
  • companion after each elaborate pace.
  • He closed the door noiselessly. The house door was standing open, and
  • he went out beyond the porch, and stood where the monkshood rose at the
  • corner of the garden bed. From this point he could see the stranger
  • through the open window, still and dim, sitting head on hand. He had
  • not moved.
  • A number of children going along the road stopped and regarded the artist
  • curiously. A boatman exchanged civilities with him. He felt that possibly
  • his circumspect attitude and position looked peculiar and unaccountable.
  • Smoking, perhaps, might seem more natural. He drew pipe and pouch from
  • his pocket, filled the pipe slowly.
  • "I wonder," ... he said, with a scarcely perceptible loss of
  • complacency. "At any rate one must give him a chance." He struck a match
  • in the virile way, and proceeded to light his pipe.
  • He heard his landlady behind him, coming with his lamp lit from the
  • kitchen. He turned, gesticulating with his pipe, and stopped her at the
  • door of his sitting-room. He had some difficulty in explaining the
  • situation in whispers, for she did not know he had a visitor. She
  • retreated again with the lamp, still a little mystified to judge from her
  • manner, and he resumed his hovering at the corner of the porch, flushed
  • and less at his ease.
  • Long after he had smoked out his pipe, and when the bats were abroad,
  • curiosity dominated his complex hesitations, and he stole back into his
  • darkling sitting-room. He paused in the doorway. The stranger was still
  • in the same attitude, dark against the window. Save for the singing of
  • some sailors aboard one of the little slate-carrying ships in the harbour
  • the evening was very still. Outside, the spikes of monkshood and
  • delphinium stood erect and motionless against the shadow of the hillside.
  • Something flashed into Isbister's mind; he started, and leaning over the
  • table, listened. An unpleasant suspicion grew stronger; became
  • conviction. Astonishment seized him and became--dread!
  • No sound of breathing came from the seated figure!
  • He crept slowly and noiselessly round the table, pausing twice to listen.
  • At last he could lay his hand on the back of the armchair. He bent down
  • until the two heads were ear to ear.
  • Then he bent still lower to look up at his visitor's face. He started
  • violently and uttered an exclamation. The eyes were void spaces of white.
  • He looked again and saw that they were open and with the pupils rolled
  • under the lids. He was afraid. He took the man by the shoulder and shook
  • him. "Are you asleep?" he said, with his voice jumping, and again, "Are
  • you asleep?"
  • A conviction took possession of his mind that this man was dead. He
  • became active and noisy, strode across the room, blundering against the
  • table as he did so, and rang the bell.
  • "Please bring a light at once," he said in the passage. "There is
  • something wrong with my friend."
  • He returned to the motionless seated figure, grasped the shoulder, shook
  • it, shouted. The room was flooded with yellow glare as his landlady
  • entered with the light. His face was white as he turned blinking towards
  • her. "I must fetch a doctor," he said. "It is either death or a fit. Is
  • there a doctor in the village? Where is a doctor to be found?"
  • CHAPTER II
  • THE TRANCE
  • The state of cataleptic rigour into which this man had fallen, lasted for
  • an unprecedented length of time, and then he passed slowly to the flaccid
  • state, to a lax attitude suggestive of profound repose. Then it was his
  • eyes could be closed.
  • He was removed from the hotel to the Boscastle surgery, and from the
  • surgery, after some weeks, to London. But he still resisted every attempt
  • at reanimation. After a time, for reasons that will appear later, these
  • attempts were discontinued. For a great space he lay in that strange
  • condition, inert and still--neither dead nor living but, as it were,
  • suspended, hanging midway between nothingness and existence. His was a
  • darkness unbroken by a ray of thought or sensation, a dreamless
  • inanition, a vast space of peace. The tumult of his mind had swelled and
  • risen to an abrupt climax of silence. Where was the man? Where is any man
  • when insensibility takes hold of him?
  • "It seems only yesterday," said Isbister. "I remember it all as though it
  • happened yesterday--clearer, perhaps, than if it had happened yesterday."
  • It was the Isbister of the last chapter, but he was no longer a young
  • man. The hair that had been brown and a trifle in excess of the
  • fashionable length, was iron grey and clipped close, and the face that
  • had been pink and white was buff and ruddy. He had a pointed beard shot
  • with grey. He talked to an elderly man who wore a summer suit of drill
  • (the summer of that year was unusually hot). This was Warming, a London
  • solicitor and next of kin to Graham, the man who had fallen into the
  • trance. And the two men stood side by side in a room in a house in London
  • regarding his recumbent figure.
  • It was a yellow figure lying lax upon a water-bed and clad in a flowing
  • shirt, a figure with a shrunken face and a stubby beard, lean limbs and
  • lank nails, and about it was a case of thin glass. This glass seemed to
  • mark off the sleeper from the reality of life about him, he was a thing
  • apart, a strange, isolated abnormality. The two men stood close to the
  • glass, peering in.
  • "The thing gave me a shock," said Isbister. "I feel a queer sort of
  • surprise even now when I think of his white eyes. They were white, you
  • know, rolled up. Coming here again brings it all back to me."
  • "Have you never seen him since that time?" asked Warming.
  • "Often wanted to come," said Isbister; "but business nowadays is too
  • serious a thing for much holiday keeping. I've been in America most of
  • the time."
  • "If I remember rightly," said Warming, "you were an artist?"
  • "Was. And then I became a married man. I saw it was all up with black and
  • white, very soon--at least for a mediocrity, and I jumped on to process.
  • Those posters on the Cliffs at Dover are by my people."
  • "Good posters," admitted the solicitor, "though I was sorry to see
  • them there."
  • "Last as long as the cliffs, if necessary," exclaimed Isbister with
  • satisfaction. "The world changes. When he fell asleep, twenty years ago,
  • I was down at Boscastle with a box of water-colours and a noble,
  • old-fashioned ambition. I didn't expect that some day my pigments would
  • glorify the whole blessed coast of England, from Land's End round again
  • to the Lizard. Luck comes to a man very often when he's not looking."
  • Warming seemed to doubt the quality of the luck. "I just missed seeing
  • you, if I recollect aright."
  • "You came back by the trap that took me to Camelford railway station. It
  • was close on the Jubilee, Victoria's Jubilee, because I remember the
  • seats and flags in Westminster, and the row with the cabman at Chelsea."
  • "The Diamond Jubilee, it was," said Warming; "the second one."
  • "Ah, yes! At the proper Jubilee--the Fifty Year affair--I was down at
  • Wookey--a boy. I missed all that.... What a fuss we had with him! My
  • landlady wouldn't take him in, wouldn't let him stay--he looked so queer
  • when he was rigid. We had to carry him in a chair up to the hotel. And
  • the Boscastle doctor--it wasn't the present chap, but the G.P. before
  • him--was at him until nearly two, with me and the landlord holding lights
  • and so forth."
  • "Do you mean--he was stiff and hard?"
  • "Stiff!--wherever you bent him he stuck. You might have stood him on his
  • head and he'd have stopped. I never saw such stiffness. Of course
  • this"--he indicated the prostrate figure by a movement of his head--"is
  • quite different. And the little doctor--what was his name?"
  • "Smithers?"
  • "Smithers it was--was quite wrong in trying to fetch him round too soon,
  • according to all accounts. The things he did! Even now it makes me feel
  • all--ugh! Mustard, snuff, pricking. And one of those beastly little
  • things, not dynamos--"
  • "Coils."
  • "Yes. You could see his muscles throb and jump, and he twisted about.
  • There were just two flaring yellow candles, and all the shadows were
  • shivering, and the little doctor nervous and putting on side, and
  • _him_--stark and squirming in the most unnatural ways. Well, it made
  • me dream."
  • Pause.
  • "It's a strange state," said Warming.
  • "It's a sort of complete absence," said Isbister. "Here's the body,
  • empty. Not dead a bit, and yet not alive. It's like a seat vacant and
  • marked 'engaged.' No feeling, no digestion, no beating of the heart--not
  • a flutter. _That_ doesn't make me feel as if there was a man present. In
  • a sense it's more dead than death, for these doctors tell me that even
  • the hair has stopped growing. Now with the proper dead, the hair will go
  • on growing--"
  • "I know," said Warming, with a flash of pain in his expression.
  • They peered through the glass again. Graham was indeed in a strange
  • state, in the flaccid phase of a trance, but a trance unprecedented in
  • medical history. Trances had lasted for as much as a year before--but at
  • the end of that time it had ever been a waking or a death; sometimes
  • first one and then the other. Isbister noted the marks the physicians
  • had made in injecting nourishment, for that had been resorted to to
  • postpone collapse; he pointed them out to Warming, who had been trying
  • not to see them.
  • "And while he has been lying here," said Isbister, with the zest of a
  • life freely spent, "I have changed my plans in life; married, raised a
  • family, my eldest lad--I hadn't begun to think of sons then--is an
  • American citizen, and looking forward to leaving Harvard. There's a touch
  • of grey in my hair. And this man, not a day older nor wiser (practically)
  • than I was in my downy days. It's curious to think of."
  • Warming turned. "And I have grown old too. I played cricket with him when
  • I was still only a boy. And he looks a young man still. Yellow perhaps.
  • But that _is_ a young man nevertheless."
  • "And there's been the War," said Isbister.
  • "From beginning to end."
  • "And these Martians."
  • "I've understood," said Isbister after a pause, "that he had some
  • moderate property of his own?"
  • "That is so," said Warming. He coughed primly. "As it happens--I have
  • charge of it."
  • "Ah!" Isbister thought, hesitated and spoke: "No doubt--his keep here is
  • not expensive--no doubt it will have improved--accumulated?"
  • "It has. He will wake up very much better off--if he wakes--than when
  • he slept."
  • "As a business man," said Isbister, "that thought has naturally been in
  • my mind. I have, indeed, sometimes thought that, speaking commercially,
  • of course, this sleep may be a very good thing for him. That he knows
  • what he is about, so to speak, in being insensible so long. If he had
  • lived straight on--"
  • "I doubt if he would have premeditated as much," said Warming. "He was
  • not a far-sighted man. In fact--"
  • "Yes?"
  • "We differed on that point. I stood to him somewhat in the relation of a
  • guardian. You have probably seen enough of affairs to recognise that
  • occasionally a certain friction--. But even if that was the case, there
  • is a doubt whether he will ever wake. This sleep exhausts slowly, but it
  • exhausts. Apparently he is sliding slowly, very slowly and tediously,
  • down a long slope, if you can understand me?"
  • "It will be a pity to lose his surprise. There's been a lot of change
  • these twenty years. It's Rip Van Winkle come real."
  • "There has been a lot of change certainly," said Warming. "And, among
  • other changes, I have changed. I am an old man."
  • Isbister hesitated, and then feigned a belated surprise. "I shouldn't
  • have thought it."
  • "I was forty-three when his bankers--you remember you wired to his
  • bankers--sent on to me."
  • "I got their address from the cheque book in his pocket," said Isbister.
  • "Well, the addition is not difficult," said Warming.
  • There was another pause, and then Isbister gave way to an unavoidable
  • curiosity. "He may go on for years yet," he said, and had a moment of
  • hesitation. "We have to consider that. His affairs, you know, may fall
  • some day into the hands of--someone else, you know."
  • "That, if you will believe me, Mr. Isbister, is one of the problems most
  • constantly before my mind. We happen to be--as a matter of fact, there
  • are no very trustworthy connexions of ours. It is a grotesque and
  • unprecedented position."
  • "Rather," said Isbister.
  • "It seems to me it's a case of some public body, some practically
  • undying guardian. If he really is going on living--as the doctors, some
  • of them, think. As a matter of fact, I have gone to one or two public men
  • about it. But, so far, nothing has been done."
  • "It wouldn't be a bad idea to hand him over to some public body--the
  • British Museum Trustees, or the Royal College of Physicians. Sounds a bit
  • odd, of course, but the whole situation is odd."
  • "The difficulty is to induce them to take him."
  • "Red tape, I suppose?"
  • "Partly."
  • Pause. "It's a curious business, certainly," said Isbister. "And compound
  • interest has a way of mounting up."
  • "It has," said Warming. "And now the gold supplies are running short
  • there is a tendency towards ... appreciation."
  • "I've felt that," said Isbister with a grimace. "But it makes it better
  • for _him_."
  • "_If_ he wakes."
  • "If he wakes," echoed Isbister. "Do you notice the pinched-in look of his
  • nose, and the way in which his eyelids sink?"
  • Warming looked and thought for a space. "I doubt if he will wake," he
  • said at last.
  • "I never properly understood," said Isbister, "what it was brought this
  • on. He told me something about overstudy. I've often been curious."
  • "He was a man of considerable gifts, but spasmodic, emotional. He
  • had grave domestic troubles, divorced his wife, in fact, and it was
  • as a relief from that, I think, that he took up politics of the
  • rabid sort. He was a fanatical Radical--a Socialist--or typical
  • Liberal, as they used to call themselves, of the advanced school.
  • Energetic--flighty--undisciplined. Overwork upon a controversy did this
  • for him. I remember the pamphlet he wrote--a curious production. Wild,
  • whirling stuff. There were one or two prophecies. Some of them are
  • already exploded, some of them are established facts. But for the most
  • part to read such a thesis is to realise how full the world is of
  • unanticipated things. He will have much to learn, much to unlearn, when
  • he wakes. If ever a waking comes."
  • "I'd give anything to be there," said Isbister, "just to hear what he
  • would say to it all."
  • "So would I," said Warming. "Aye! so would I," with an old man's sudden
  • turn to self pity. "But I shall never see him wake."
  • He stood looking thoughtfully at the waxen figure. "He will never awake,"
  • he said at last. He sighed. "He will never awake again."
  • CHAPTER III
  • THE AWAKENING
  • But Warming was wrong in that. An awakening came.
  • What a wonderfully complex thing! this simple seeming unity--the self!
  • Who can trace its reintegration as morning after morning we awaken, the
  • flux and confluence of its countless factors interweaving, rebuilding,
  • the dim first stirrings of the soul, the growth and synthesis of the
  • unconscious to the subconscious, the subconscious to dawning
  • consciousness, until at last we recognise ourselves again. And as it
  • happens to most of us after the night's sleep, so it was with Graham at
  • the end of his vast slumber. A dim cloud of sensation taking shape, a
  • cloudy dreariness, and he found himself vaguely somewhere, recumbent,
  • faint, but alive.
  • The pilgrimage towards a personal being seemed to traverse vast gulfs, to
  • occupy epochs. Gigantic dreams that were terrible realities at the time,
  • left vague perplexing memories, strange creatures, strange scenery, as if
  • from another planet. There was a distinct impression, too, of a momentous
  • conversation, of a name--he could not tell what name--that was
  • subsequently to recur, of some queer long-forgotten sensation of vein and
  • muscle, of a feeling of vast hopeless effort, the effort of a man near
  • drowning in darkness. Then came a panorama of dazzling unstable confluent
  • scenes....
  • Graham became aware that his eyes were open and regarding some
  • unfamiliar thing.
  • It was something white, the edge of something, a frame of wood. He moved
  • his head slightly, following the contour of this shape. It went up
  • beyond the top of his eyes. He tried to think where he might be. Did it
  • matter, seeing he was so wretched? The colour of his thoughts was a dark
  • depression. He felt the featureless misery of one who wakes towards the
  • hour of dawn. He had an uncertain sense of whispers and footsteps
  • hastily receding.
  • The movement of his head involved a perception of extreme physical
  • weakness. He supposed he was in bed in the hotel at the place in the
  • valley--but he could not recall that white edge. He must have slept. He
  • remembered now that he had wanted to sleep. He recalled the cliff and
  • Waterfall again, and then recollected something about talking to a
  • passer-by....
  • How long had he slept? What was that sound of pattering feet? And that
  • rise and fall, like the murmur of breakers on pebbles? He put out a
  • languid hand to reach his watch from the chair whereon it was his habit
  • to place it, and touched some smooth hard surface like glass. This was so
  • unexpected that it startled him extremely. Quite suddenly he rolled over,
  • stared for a moment, and struggled into a sitting position. The effort
  • was unexpectedly difficult, and it left him giddy and weak--and amazed.
  • He rubbed his eyes. The riddle of his surroundings was confusing but his
  • mind was quite clear--evidently his sleep had benefited him. He was not
  • in a bed at all as he understood the word, but lying naked on a very soft
  • and yielding mattress, in a trough of dark glass. The mattress was
  • partly transparent, a fact he observed with a sense of insecurity, and
  • below it was a mirror reflecting him greyly. About his arm--and he saw
  • with a shock that his skin was strangely dry and yellow--was bound a
  • curious apparatus of rubber, bound so cunningly that it seemed to pass
  • into his skin above and below. And this bed was placed in a case of
  • greenish coloured glass (as it seemed to him), a bar in the white
  • framework of which had first arrested his attention. In the corner of the
  • case was a stand of glittering and delicately made apparatus, for the
  • most part quite strange appliances, though a maximum and minimum
  • thermometer was recognisable.
  • The slightly greenish tint of the glass-like substance which surrounded
  • him on every hand obscured what lay behind, but he perceived it was a
  • vast apartment of splendid appearance, and with a very large and simple
  • white archway facing him. Close to the walls of the cage were articles of
  • furniture, a table covered with a silvery cloth, silvery like the side of
  • a fish, a couple of graceful chairs, and on the table a number of dishes
  • with substances piled on them, a bottle and two glasses. He realised that
  • he was intensely hungry.
  • He could see no one, and after a period of hesitation scrambled off the
  • translucent mattress and tried to stand on the clean white floor of his
  • little apartment. He had miscalculated his strength, however, and
  • staggered and put his hand against the glass like pane before him to
  • steady himself. For a moment it resisted his hand, bending outward like a
  • distended bladder, then it broke with a slight report and vanished--a
  • pricked bubble. He reeled out into the general space of the hall, greatly
  • astonished. He caught at the table to save himself, knocking one of the
  • glasses to the floor--it rang but did not break--and sat down in one of
  • the armchairs.
  • When he had a little recovered he filled the remaining glass from the
  • bottle and drank--a colourless liquid it was, but not water, with a
  • pleasing faint aroma and taste and a quality of immediate support and
  • stimulus. He put down the vessel and looked about him.
  • The apartment lost none of its size and magnificence now that the
  • greenish transparency that had intervened was removed. The archway he saw
  • led to a flight of steps, going downward without the intermediation of a
  • door, to a spacious transverse passage. This passage ran between polished
  • pillars of some white-veined substance of deep ultramarine, and along it
  • came the sound of human movements, and voices and a deep undeviating
  • droning note. He sat, now fully awake, listening alertly, forgetting the
  • viands in his attention.
  • Then with a shock he remembered that he was naked, and casting about him
  • for covering, saw a long black robe thrown on one of the chairs beside
  • him. This he wrapped about him and sat down again, trembling.
  • His mind was still a surging perplexity. Clearly he had slept, and had
  • been removed in his sleep. But where? And who were those people, the
  • distant crowd beyond the deep blue pillars? Boscastle? He poured out and
  • partially drank another glass of the colourless fluid.
  • What was this place?--this place that to his senses seemed subtly
  • quivering like a thing alive? He looked about him at the clean and
  • beautiful form of the apartment, unstained by ornament, and saw that the
  • roof was broken in one place by a circular shaft full of light, and, as
  • he looked, a steady, sweeping shadow blotted it out and passed, and came
  • again and passed. "Beat, beat," that sweeping shadow had a note of its
  • own in the subdued tumult that filled the air.
  • He would have called out, but only a little sound came into his throat.
  • Then he stood up, and, with the uncertain steps of a drunkard, made his
  • way towards the archway. He staggered down the steps, tripped on the
  • corner of the black cloak he had wrapped about himself, and saved himself
  • by catching at one of the blue pillars.
  • The passage ran down a cool vista of blue and purple and ended remotely
  • in a railed space like a balcony brightly lit and projecting into a space
  • of haze, a space like the interior of some gigantic building. Beyond and
  • remote were vast and vague architectural forms. The tumult of voices rose
  • now loud and clear, and on the balcony and with their backs to him,
  • gesticulating and apparently in animated conversation, were three
  • figures, richly dressed in loose and easy garments of bright soft
  • colourings. The noise of a great multitude of people poured up over the
  • balcony, and once it seemed the top of a banner passed, and once some
  • brightly coloured object, a pale blue cap or garment thrown up into the
  • air perhaps, flashed athwart the space and fell. The shouts sounded like
  • English, there was a reiteration of "Wake!" He heard some indistinct
  • shrill cry, and abruptly these three men began laughing.
  • "Ha, ha, ha!" laughed one--a red-haired man in a short purple robe. "When
  • the Sleeper wakes--_When_!"
  • He turned his eyes full of merriment along the passage. His face changed,
  • the whole man changed, became rigid. The other two turned swiftly at his
  • exclamation and stood motionless. Their faces assumed an expression of
  • consternation, an expression that deepened into awe.
  • Suddenly Graham's knees bent beneath him, his arm against the pillar
  • collapsed limply, he staggered forward and fell upon his face.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • THE SOUND OF A TUMULT
  • Graham's last impression before he fainted was of the ringing of bells.
  • He learnt afterwards that he was insensible, hanging between life and
  • death, for the better part of an hour. When he recovered his senses, he
  • was back on his translucent couch, and there was a stirring warmth at
  • heart and throat. The dark apparatus, he perceived, had been removed from
  • his arm, which was bandaged. The white framework was still about him, but
  • the greenish transparent substance that had filled it was altogether
  • gone. A man in a deep violet robe, one of those who had been on the
  • balcony, was looking keenly into his face.
  • Remote but insistent was a clamour of bells and confused sounds, that
  • suggested to his mind the picture of a great number of people
  • shouting together. Something seemed to fall across this tumult, a
  • door suddenly closed.
  • Graham moved his head. "What does this all mean?" he said slowly.
  • "Where am I?"
  • He saw the red-haired man who had been first to discover him. A voice
  • seemed to be asking what he had said, and was abruptly stilled.
  • The man in violet answered in a soft voice, speaking English with a
  • slightly foreign accent, or so at least it seemed to the Sleeper's ears.
  • "You are quite safe. You were brought hither from where you fell asleep.
  • It is quite safe. You have been here some time--sleeping. In a trance."
  • He said, something further that Graham could not hear, and a little phial
  • was handed across to him. Graham felt a cooling spray, a fragrant mist
  • played over his forehead for a moment, and his sense of refreshment
  • increased. He closed his eyes in satisfaction.
  • "Better?" asked the man in violet, as Graham's eyes reopened. He was a
  • pleasant-faced man of thirty, perhaps, with a pointed flaxen beard, and a
  • clasp of gold at the neck of his violet robe.
  • "Yes," said Graham.
  • "You have been asleep some time. In a cataleptic trance. You have heard?
  • Catalepsy? It may seem strange to you at first, but I can assure you
  • everything is well."
  • Graham did not answer, but these words served their reassuring purpose.
  • His eyes went from face to face of the three people about him. They were
  • regarding him strangely. He knew he ought to be somewhere in Cornwall,
  • but he could not square these things with that impression.
  • A matter that had been in his mind during his last waking moments at
  • Boscastle recurred, a thing resolved upon and somehow neglected. He
  • cleared his throat.
  • "Have you wired my cousin?" he asked. "E. Warming, 27, Chancery Lane?"
  • They were all assiduous to hear. But he had to repeat it. "What an odd
  • _blurr_ in his accent!" whispered the red-haired man. "Wire, sir?" said
  • the young man with the flaxen beard, evidently puzzled.
  • "He means send an electric telegram," volunteered the third, a
  • pleasant-faced youth of nineteen or twenty. The flaxen-bearded man gave a
  • cry of comprehension. "How stupid of me! You may be sure everything shall
  • be done, sir," he said to Graham. "I am afraid it would be difficult
  • to--_wire_ to your cousin. He is not in London now. But don't trouble
  • about arrangements yet; you have been asleep a very long time and the
  • important thing is to get over that, sir." (Graham concluded the word was
  • sir, but this man pronounced it "_Sire_.")
  • "Oh!" said Graham, and became quiet.
  • It was all very puzzling, but apparently these people in unfamiliar dress
  • knew what they were about. Yet they were odd and the room was odd. It
  • seemed he was in some newly established place. He had a sudden flash of
  • suspicion! Surely this wasn't some hall of public exhibition! If it was
  • he would give Warming a piece of his mind. But it scarcely had that
  • character. And in a place of public exhibition he would not have
  • discovered himself naked.
  • Then suddenly, quite abruptly, he realised what had happened. There was
  • no perceptible interval of suspicion, no dawn to his knowledge. Abruptly
  • he knew that his trance had lasted for a vast interval; as if by some
  • processes of thought-reading he interpreted the awe in the faces that
  • peered into his. He looked at them strangely, full of intense emotion. It
  • seemed they read his eyes. He framed his lips to speak and could not. A
  • queer impulse to hide his knowledge came into his mind almost at the
  • moment of his discovery. He looked at his bare feet, regarding them
  • silently. His impulse to speak passed. He was trembling exceedingly.
  • They gave him some pink fluid with a greenish fluorescence and a meaty
  • taste, and the assurance of returning strength grew.
  • "That--that makes me feel better," he said hoarsely, and there were
  • murmurs of respectful approval. He knew now quite clearly. He made to
  • speak again, and again he could not.
  • He pressed his throat and tried a third time. "How long?" he asked in a
  • level voice. "How long have I been asleep?"
  • "Some considerable time," said the flaxen-bearded man, glancing quickly
  • at the others.
  • "How long?"
  • "A very long time."
  • "Yes--yes," said Graham, suddenly testy. "But I want--Is it--it is--some
  • years? Many years? There was something--I forget what. I feel--confused.
  • But you--" He sobbed. "You need not fence with me. How long--?"
  • He stopped, breathing irregularly. He squeezed his eyes with his knuckles
  • and sat waiting for an answer.
  • They spoke in undertones.
  • "Five or six?" he asked faintly. "More?"
  • "Very much more than that."
  • "More!"
  • "More."
  • He looked at them and it seemed as though imps were twitching the muscles
  • of his face. He looked his question.
  • "Many years," said the man with the red beard.
  • Graham struggled into a sitting position. He wiped a rheumy tear from
  • his face with a lean hand. "Many years!" he repeated. He shut his eyes
  • tight, opened them, and sat looking about him from one unfamiliar thing
  • to another.
  • "How many years?" he asked.
  • "You must be prepared to be surprised."
  • "Well?"
  • "More than a gross of years."
  • He was irritated at the strange word. "More than a _what_?"
  • Two of them spoke together. Some quick remarks that were made about
  • "decimal" he did not catch.
  • "How long did you say?" asked Graham. "How long? Don't look like
  • that. Tell me."
  • Among the remarks in an undertone, his ear caught six words: "More than a
  • couple of centuries."
  • "_What_?" he cried, turning on the youth who he thought had spoken. "Who
  • says--? What was that? A couple of _centuries_!"
  • "Yes," said the man with the red beard. "Two hundred years."
  • Graham repeated the words. He had been prepared to hear of a vast repose,
  • and yet these concrete centuries defeated him.
  • "Two hundred years," he said again, with the figure of a great gulf
  • opening very slowly in his mind; and then, "Oh, but--!"
  • They said nothing.
  • "You--did you say--?"
  • "Two hundred years. Two centuries of years," said the man with the
  • red beard.
  • There was a pause. Graham looked at their faces and saw that what he had
  • heard was indeed true.
  • "But it can't be," he said querulously. "I am dreaming. Trances--trances
  • don't last. That is not right--this is a joke you have played upon me!
  • Tell me--some days ago, perhaps, I was walking along the coast of
  • Cornwall--?"
  • His voice failed him.
  • The man with the flaxen beard hesitated. "I'm not very strong in history,
  • sir," he said weakly, and glanced at the others.
  • "That was it, sir," said the youngster. "Boscastle, in the old Duchy of
  • Cornwall--it's in the south-west country beyond the dairy meadows. There
  • is a house there still. I have been there."
  • "Boscastle!" Graham turned his eyes to the youngster. "That was
  • it--Boscastle. Little Boscastle. I fell asleep--somewhere there. I don't
  • exactly remember. I don't exactly remember."
  • He pressed his brows and whispered, "More than _two hundred years_!"
  • He began to speak quickly with a twitching face, but his heart was
  • cold within him. "But if it _is_ two hundred years, every soul I know,
  • every human being that ever I saw or spoke to before I went to sleep,
  • must be dead."
  • They did not answer him.
  • "The Queen and the Royal Family, her Ministers, Church and State. High
  • and low, rich and poor, one with another ... Is there England still?"
  • "That's a comfort! Is there London?"
  • "This _is_ London, eh? And you are my assistant-custodian;
  • assistant-custodian. And these--? Eh? Assistant-custodians too!"
  • He sat with a gaunt stare on his face. "But why am I here? No! Don't
  • talk. Be quiet. Let me--"
  • He sat silent, rubbed his eyes, and, uncovering them, found another
  • little glass of pinkish fluid held towards him. He took the dose.
  • Directly he had taken it he began to weep naturally and refreshingly.
  • Presently he looked at their faces, suddenly laughed through his tears, a
  • little foolishly. "But--two--hun--dred--years!" he said. He grimaced
  • hysterically and covered his face again.
  • After a space he grew calm. He sat up, his hands hanging over his knees
  • in almost precisely the same attitude in which Isbister had found him on
  • the cliff at Pentargen. His attention was attracted by a thick
  • domineering voice, the footsteps of an advancing personage. "What are you
  • doing? Why was I not warned? Surely you could tell? Someone will suffer
  • for this. The man must be kept quiet. Are the doorways closed? All the
  • doorways? He must be kept perfectly quiet. He must not be told. Has he
  • been told anything?"
  • The man with the fair beard made some inaudible remark, and Graham
  • looking over his shoulder saw approaching a short, fat, and thickset
  • beardless man, with aquiline nose and heavy neck and chin. Very thick
  • black and slightly sloping eyebrows that almost met over his nose and
  • overhung deep grey eyes, gave his face an oddly formidable expression. He
  • scowled momentarily at Graham and then his regard returned to the man
  • with the flaxen beard. "These others," he said in a voice of extreme
  • irritation. "You had better go."
  • "Go?" said the red-bearded man.
  • "Certainly--go now. But see the doorways are closed as you go."
  • The two men addressed turned obediently, after one reluctant glance at
  • Graham, and instead of going through the archway as he expected, walked
  • straight to the dead wall of the apartment opposite the archway. A long
  • strip of this apparently solid wall rolled up with a snap, hung over the
  • two retreating men and fell again, and immediately Graham was alone with
  • the newcomer and the purple-robed man with the flaxen beard.
  • For a space the thickset man took not the slightest notice of Graham, but
  • proceeded to interrogate the other--obviously his subordinate---upon the
  • treatment of their charge. He spoke clearly, but in phrases only
  • partially intelligible to Graham. The awakening seemed not only a matter
  • of surprise but of consternation and annoyance to him. He was evidently
  • profoundly excited.
  • "You must not confuse his mind by telling him things," he repeated again
  • and again. "You must not confuse his mind."
  • His questions answered, he turned quickly and eyed the awakened sleeper
  • with an ambiguous expression.
  • "Feel queer?" he asked.
  • "Very."
  • "The world, what you see of it, seems strange to you?"
  • "I suppose I have to live in it, strange as it seems."
  • "I suppose so, now."
  • "In the first place, hadn't I better have some clothes?"
  • "They--" said the thickset man and stopped, and the flaxen-bearded man
  • met his eye and went away. "You will very speedily have clothes," said
  • the thickset man.
  • "Is it true indeed, that I have been asleep two hundred--?" asked Graham.
  • "They have told you that, have they? Two hundred and three, as a
  • matter of fact."
  • Graham accepted the indisputable now with raised eyebrows and depressed
  • mouth. He sat silent for a moment, and then asked a question, "Is there a
  • mill or dynamo near here?" He did not wait for an answer. "Things have
  • changed tremendously, I suppose?" he said.
  • "What is that shouting?" he asked abruptly.
  • "Nothing," said the thickset man impatiently. "It's people. You'll
  • understand better later--perhaps. As you say, things have changed." He
  • spoke shortly, his brows were knit, and he glanced about him like a man
  • trying to decide in an emergency. "We must get you clothes and so forth,
  • at any rate. Better wait here until they can be procured. No one will
  • come near you. You want shaving."
  • Graham rubbed his chin.
  • The man with the flaxen beard came back towards them, turned suddenly,
  • listened for a moment, lifted his eyebrows at the older man, and hurried
  • off through the archway towards the balcony. The tumult of shouting grew
  • louder, and the thickset man turned and listened also. He cursed suddenly
  • under his breath, and turned his eyes upon Graham with an unfriendly
  • expression. It was a surge of many voices, rising and falling, shouting
  • and screaming, and once came a sound like blows and sharp cries, and then
  • a snapping like the crackling of dry sticks. Graham strained his ears to
  • draw some single thread of sound from the woven tumult.
  • Then he perceived, repeated again and again, a certain formula. For a
  • time he doubted his ears. But surely these were the words: "Show us the
  • Sleeper! Show us the Sleeper!"
  • The thickset man rushed suddenly to the archway.
  • "Wild!" he cried. "How do they know? Do they know? Or is it guessing?"
  • There was perhaps an answer.
  • "I can't come," said the thickset man; "I have _him_ to see to. But shout
  • from the balcony."
  • There was an inaudible reply.
  • "Say he is not awake. Anything! I leave it to you."
  • He came hurrying back to Graham. "You must have clothes at once," he
  • said. "You cannot stop here--and it will be impossible to--"
  • He rushed away, Graham shouting unanswered questions after him. In a
  • moment he was back.
  • "I can't tell you what is happening. It is too complex to explain. In a
  • moment you shall have your clothes made. Yes--in a moment. And then I can
  • take you away from here. You will find out our troubles soon enough."
  • "But those voices. They were shouting--?"
  • "Something about the Sleeper--that's you. They have some twisted idea. I
  • don't know what it is. I know nothing."
  • A shrill bell jetted acutely across the indistinct mingling of remote
  • noises, and this brusque person sprang to a little group of appliances in
  • the corner of the room. He listened for a moment, regarding a ball of
  • crystal, nodded, and said a few indistinct words; then he walked to the
  • wall through which the two men had vanished. It rolled up again like a
  • curtain, and he stood waiting.
  • Graham lifted his arm and was astonished to find what strength the
  • restoratives had given him. He thrust one leg over the side of the couch
  • and then the other. His head no longer swam. He could scarcely credit his
  • rapid recovery. He sat feeling his limbs.
  • The man with the flaxen beard re-entered from the archway, and as he did
  • so the cage of a lift came sliding down in front of the thickset man, and
  • a lean, grey-bearded man, carrying a roll, and wearing a tightly-fitting
  • costume of dark green, appeared therein.
  • "This is the tailor," said the thickset man with an introductory gesture.
  • "It will never do for you to wear that black. I cannot understand how it
  • got here. But I shall. I shall. You will be as rapid as possible?" he
  • said to the tailor.
  • The man in green bowed, and, advancing, seated himself by Graham on the
  • bed. His manner was calm, but his eyes were full of curiosity. "You will
  • find the fashions altered, Sire," he said. He glanced from under his
  • brows at the thickset man.
  • He opened the roller with a quick movement, and a confusion of brilliant
  • fabrics poured out over his knees. "You lived, Sire, in a period
  • essentially cylindrical--the Victorian. With a tendency to the hemisphere
  • in hats. Circular curves always. Now--" He flicked out a little appliance
  • the size and appearance of a keyless watch, whirled the knob, and
  • behold--a little figure in white appeared kinetoscope fashion on the
  • dial, walking and turning. The tailor caught up a pattern of bluish white
  • satin. "That is my conception of your immediate treatment," he said.
  • The thickset man came and stood by the shoulder of Graham.
  • "We have very little time," he said.
  • "Trust me," said the tailor. "My machine follows. What do you
  • think of this?"
  • "What is that?" asked the man from the nineteenth century.
  • "In your days they showed you a fashion-plate," said the tailor, "but
  • this is our modern development. See here." The little figure repeated its
  • evolutions, but in a different costume. "Or this," and with a click
  • another small figure in a more voluminous type of robe marched on to the
  • dial. The tailor was very quick in his movements, and glanced twice
  • towards the lift as he did these things.
  • It rumbled again, and a crop-haired anemic lad with features of the
  • Chinese type, clad in coarse pale blue canvas, appeared together with a
  • complicated machine, which he pushed noiselessly on little castors into
  • the room. Incontinently the little kinetoscope was dropped, Graham was
  • invited to stand in front of the machine and the tailor muttered some
  • instructions to the crop-haired lad, who answered in guttural tones and
  • with words Graham did not recognise. The boy then went to conduct an
  • incomprehensible monologue in the corner, and the tailor pulled out a
  • number of slotted arms terminating in little discs, pulling them out
  • until the discs were flat against the body of Graham, one at each
  • shoulder blade, one at the elbows, one at the neck and so forth, so that
  • at last there were, perhaps, two score of them upon his body and limbs.
  • At the same time, some other person entered the room by the lift, behind
  • Graham. The tailor set moving a mechanism that initiated a faint-sounding
  • rhythmic movement of parts in the machine, and in another moment he was
  • knocking up the levers and Graham was released. The tailor replaced his
  • cloak of black, and the man with the flaxen beard proffered him a little
  • glass of some refreshing fluid. Graham saw over the rim of the glass a
  • pale-faced young man regarding him with a singular fixity.
  • The thickset man had been pacing the room fretfully, and now turned and
  • went through the archway towards the balcony, from which the noise of a
  • distant crowd still came in gusts and cadences. The crop-headed lad
  • handed the tailor a roll of the bluish satin and the two began fixing
  • this in the mechanism in a manner reminiscent of a roll of paper in a
  • nineteenth century printing machine. Then they ran the entire thing on
  • its easy, noiseless bearings across the room to a remote corner where a
  • twisted cable looped rather gracefully from the wall. They made some
  • connexion and the machine became energetic and swift.
  • "What is that doing?" asked Graham, pointing with the empty glass to the
  • busy figures and trying to ignore the scrutiny of the new comer. "Is
  • that--some sort of force--laid on?"
  • "Yes," said the man with the flaxen beard.
  • "Who is _that_?" He indicated the archway behind him.
  • The man in purple stroked his little beard, hesitated, and answered in
  • an undertone, "He is Howard, your chief guardian. You see, Sire--it's
  • a little difficult to explain. The Council appoints a guardian and
  • assistants. This hall has under certain restrictions been public. In
  • order that people might satisfy themselves. We have barred the
  • doorways for the first time. But I think--if you don't mind, I will
  • leave him to explain."
  • "Odd!" said Graham. "Guardian? Council?" Then turning his back on the
  • new comer, he asked in an undertone, "Why is this man _glaring_ at me? Is
  • he a mesmerist?"
  • "Mesmerist! He is a capillotomist."
  • "Capillotomist!"
  • "Yes--one of the chief. His yearly fee is sixdoz lions."
  • It sounded sheer nonsense. Graham snatched at the last phrase with an
  • unsteady mind. "Sixdoz lions?" he said.
  • "Didn't you have lions? I suppose not. You had the old pounds? They are
  • our monetary units."
  • "But what was that you said--sixdoz?"
  • "Yes. Six dozen, Sire. Of course things, even these little things, have
  • altered. You lived in the days of the decimal system, the Arab
  • system--tens, and little hundreds and thousands. We have eleven numerals
  • now. We have single figures for both ten and eleven, two figures for a
  • dozen, and a dozen dozen makes a gross, a great hundred, you know, a
  • dozen gross a dozand, and a dozand dozand a myriad. Very simple?"
  • "I suppose so," said Graham. "But about this cap--what was it?"
  • The man with the flaxen beard glanced over his shoulder.
  • "Here are your clothes!" he said. Graham turned round sharply and saw the
  • tailor standing at his elbow smiling, and holding some palpably new
  • garments over his arm. The crop-headed boy, by means of one ringer, was
  • impelling the complicated machine towards the lift by which he had
  • arrived. Graham stared at the completed suit. "You don't mean to say--!"
  • "Just made," said the tailor. He dropped the garments at the feet of
  • Graham, walked to the bed, on which Graham had so recently been lying,
  • flung out the translucent mattress, and turned up the looking-glass. As
  • he did so a furious bell summoned the thickset man to the corner. The
  • man with the flaxen beard rushed across to him and then hurried out by
  • the archway.
  • The tailor was assisting Graham into a dark purple combination garment,
  • stockings, vest, and pants in one, as the thickset man came back from
  • the corner to meet the man with the flaxen beard returning from the
  • balcony. They began speaking quickly in an undertone, their bearing had
  • an unmistakable quality of anxiety. Over the purple under-garment came
  • a complex garment of bluish white, and Graham, was clothed in the
  • fashion once more and saw himself, sallow-faced, unshaven and shaggy
  • still, but at least naked no longer, and in some indefinable
  • unprecedented way graceful.
  • "I must shave," he said regarding himself in the glass.
  • "In a moment," said Howard.
  • The persistent stare ceased. The young man closed his eyes, reopened
  • them, and with a lean hand extended, advanced on Graham. Then he stopped,
  • with his hand slowly gesticulating, and looked about him.
  • "A seat," said Howard impatiently, and in a moment the flaxen-bearded man
  • had a chair behind Graham. "Sit down, please," said Howard.
  • Graham hesitated, and in the other hand of the wild-eyed man he saw the
  • glint of steel.
  • "Don't you understand, Sire?" cried the flaxen-bearded man with hurried
  • politeness. "He is going to cut your hair."
  • "Oh!" cried Graham enlightened. "But you called him--"
  • "A capillotomist--precisely! He is one of the finest artists in
  • the world."
  • Graham sat down abruptly. The flaxen-bearded man disappeared. The
  • capillotomist came forward, examined Graham's ears and surveyed him, felt
  • the back of his head, and would have sat down again to regard him but for
  • Howard's audible impatience. Forthwith with rapid movements and a
  • succession of deftly handled implements he shaved Graham's chin, clipped
  • his moustache, and cut and arranged his hair. All this he did without a
  • word, with something of the rapt air of a poet inspired. And as soon as
  • he had finished Graham was handed a pair of shoes.
  • Suddenly a loud voice shouted--it seemed from a piece of machinery in the
  • corner--"At once--at once. The people know all over the city. Work is
  • being stopped. Work is being stopped. Wait for nothing, but come."
  • This shout appeared to perturb Howard exceedingly. By his gestures it
  • seemed to Graham that he hesitated between two directions. Abruptly he
  • went towards the corner where the apparatus stood about the little
  • crystal ball. As he did so the undertone of tumultuous shouting from the
  • archway that had continued during all these occurrences rose to a mighty
  • sound, roared as if it were sweeping past, and fell again as if receding
  • swiftly. It drew Graham after it with an irresistible attraction. He
  • glanced at the thickset man, and then obeyed his impulse. In two strides
  • he was down the steps and in the passage, and in a score he was out upon
  • the balcony upon which the three men had been standing.
  • CHAPTER V
  • THE MOVING WAYS
  • He went to the railings of the balcony and stared upward. An exclamation
  • of surprise at his appearance, and the movements of a number of people
  • came from the great area below.
  • His first impression was of overwhelming architecture. The place into
  • which he looked was an aisle of Titanic buildings, curving spaciously in
  • either direction. Overhead mighty cantilevers sprang together across the
  • huge width of the place, and a tracery of translucent material shut out
  • the sky. Gigantic globes of cool white light shamed the pale sunbeams
  • that filtered down through the girders and wires. Here and there a
  • gossamer suspension bridge dotted with foot passengers flung across the
  • chasm and the air was webbed with slender cables. A cliff of edifice
  • hung above him, he perceived as he glanced upward, and the opposite
  • façade was grey and dim and broken by great archings, circular
  • perforations, balconies, buttresses, turret projections, myriads of vast
  • windows, and an intricate scheme of architectural relief. Athwart these
  • ran inscriptions horizontally and obliquely in an unfamiliar lettering.
  • Here and there close to the roof cables of a peculiar stoutness were
  • fastened, and drooped in a steep curve to circular openings on the
  • opposite side of the space, and even as Graham noted these a remote and
  • tiny figure of a man clad in pale blue arrested his attention. This
  • little figure was far overhead across the space beside the higher
  • fastening of one of these festoons, hanging forward from a little ledge
  • of masonry and handling some well-nigh invisible strings dependent from
  • the line. Then suddenly, with a swoop that sent Graham's heart into his
  • mouth, this man had rushed down the curve and vanished through a round
  • opening on the hither side of the way. Graham had been looking up as he
  • came out upon the balcony, and the things he saw above and opposed to
  • him had at first seized his attention to the exclusion of anything else.
  • Then suddenly he discovered the roadway! It was not a roadway at all, as
  • Graham understood such things, for in the nineteenth century the only
  • roads and streets were beaten tracks of motionless earth, jostling
  • rivulets of vehicles between narrow footways. But this roadway was three
  • hundred feet across, and it moved; it moved, all save the middle, the
  • lowest part. For a moment, the motion dazzled his mind. Then he
  • understood. Under the balcony this extraordinary roadway ran swiftly to
  • Graham's right, an endless flow rushing along as fast as a nineteenth
  • century express train, an endless platform of narrow transverse
  • overlapping slats with little interspaces that permitted it to follow
  • the curvatures of the street. Upon it were seats, and here and there
  • little kiosks, but they swept by too swiftly for him to see what might
  • be therein. From this nearest and swiftest platform a series of others
  • descended to the centre of the space. Each moved to the right, each
  • perceptibly slower than the one above it, but the difference in pace was
  • small enough to permit anyone to step from any platform to the one
  • adjacent, and so walk uninterruptedly from the swiftest to the
  • motionless middle way. Beyond this middle way was another series of
  • endless platforms rushing with varying pace to Graham's left. And seated
  • in crowds upon the two widest and swiftest platforms, or stepping from
  • one to another down the steps, or swarming over the central space, was
  • an innumerable and wonderfully diversified multitude of people.
  • "You must not stop here," shouted Howard suddenly at his side. "You must
  • come away at once."
  • Graham made no answer. He heard without hearing. The platforms ran with a
  • roar and the people were shouting. He perceived women and girls with
  • flowing hair, beautifully robed, with bands crossing between the breasts.
  • These first came out of the confusion. Then he perceived that the
  • dominant note in that kaleidoscope of costume was the pale blue that the
  • tailor's boy had worn. He became aware of cries of "The Sleeper. What has
  • happened to the Sleeper?" and it seemed as though the rushing platforms
  • before him were suddenly spattered with the pale buff of human faces, and
  • then still more thickly. He saw pointing fingers. He perceived that the
  • motionless central area of this huge arcade just opposite to the balcony
  • was densely crowded with blue-clad people. Some sort of struggle had
  • sprung into life. People seemed to be pushed up the running platforms on
  • either side, and carried away against their will. They would spring off
  • so soon as they were beyond the thick of the confusion, and run back
  • towards the conflict.
  • "It is the Sleeper. Verily it is the Sleeper," shouted voices. "That is
  • never the Sleeper," shouted others. More and more faces were turned to
  • him. At the intervals along this central area Graham noted openings,
  • pits, apparently the heads of staircases going down with people
  • ascending out of them and descending into them. The struggle it seemed
  • centred about the one of these nearest to him. People were running down
  • the moving platforms to this, leaping dexterously from platform to
  • platform. The clustering people on the higher platforms seemed to divide
  • their interest between this point and the balcony. A number of sturdy
  • little figures clad in a uniform of bright red, and working methodically
  • together, were employed it seemed in preventing access to this descending
  • staircase. About them a crowd was rapidly accumulating. Their brilliant
  • colour contrasted vividly with the whitish-blue of their antagonists, for
  • the struggle was indisputable.
  • He saw these things with Howard shouting in his ear and shaking his arm.
  • And then suddenly Howard was gone and he stood alone.
  • He perceived that the cries of "The Sleeper!" grew in volume, and that
  • the people on the nearer platform were standing up. The nearer platform
  • he perceived was empty to the right of him, and far across the space the
  • platform running in the opposite direction was coming crowded and passing
  • away bare. With incredible swiftness a vast crowd had gathered in the
  • central space before his eyes; a dense swaying mass of people, and the
  • shouts grew from a fitful crying to a voluminous incessant clamour: "The
  • Sleeper! The Sleeper!" and yells and cheers, a waving of garments and
  • cries of "Stop the Ways!" They were also crying another name strange to
  • Graham. It sounded like "Ostrog." The slower platforms were soon thick
  • with active people, running against the movement so as to keep themselves
  • opposite to him.
  • "Stop the Ways," they cried. Agile figures ran up from the centre to the
  • swift road nearest to him, were borne rapidly past him, shouting strange,
  • unintelligible things, and ran back obliquely to the central way. One
  • thing he distinguished: "It is indeed the Sleeper. It is indeed the
  • Sleeper," they testified.
  • For a space Graham stood motionless. Then he became vividly aware that
  • all this concerned him. He was pleased at his wonderful popularity, he
  • bowed, and, seeking a gesture of longer range, waved his arm. He was
  • astonished at the violence of uproar that this provoked. The tumult about
  • the descending stairway rose to furious violence. He became aware of
  • crowded balconies, of men sliding along ropes, of men in trapeze-like
  • seats hurling athwart the space. He heard voices behind him, a number of
  • people descending the steps through the archway; he suddenly perceived
  • that his guardian Howard was back again and gripping his arm painfully,
  • and shouting inaudibly in his ear.
  • He turned, and Howard's face was white. "Come back," he heard. "They will
  • stop the ways. The whole city will be in confusion."
  • He perceived a number of men hurrying along the passage of blue pillars
  • behind Howard, the red-haired man, the man with the flaxen beard, a tall
  • man in vivid vermilion, a crowd of others in red carrying staves, and all
  • these people had anxious eager faces.
  • "Get him away," cried Howard.
  • "But why?" said Graham. "I don't see--"
  • "You must come away!" said the man in red in a resolute voice. His face
  • and eyes were resolute, too. Graham's glances went from face to face, and
  • he was suddenly aware of that most disagreeable flavour in life,
  • compulsion. Someone gripped his arm....
  • He was being dragged away. It seemed as though the tumult suddenly
  • became two, as if half the shouts that had come in from this wonderful
  • roadway had sprung into the passages of the great building behind him.
  • Marvelling and confused, feeling an impotent desire to resist, Graham was
  • half led, half thrust, along the passage of blue pillars, and suddenly he
  • found himself alone with Howard in a lift and moving swiftly upward.
  • CHAPTER VI
  • THE HALL OF THE ATLAS
  • From the moment when the tailor had bowed his farewell to the moment when
  • Graham found himself in the lift, was altogether barely five minutes. As
  • yet the haze of his vast interval of sleep hung about him, as yet the
  • initial strangeness of his being alive at all in this remote age touched
  • everything with wonder, with a sense of the irrational, with something of
  • the quality of a realistic dream. He was still detached, an astonished
  • spectator, still but half involved in life. What he had seen, and
  • especially the last crowded tumult, framed in the setting of the balcony,
  • had a spectacular turn, like a thing witnessed from the box of a theatre.
  • "I don't understand," he said. "What was the trouble? My mind is in a
  • whirl. Why were they shouting? What is the danger?"
  • "We have our troubles," said Howard. His eyes avoided Graham's enquiry.
  • "This is a time of unrest. And, in fact, your appearance, your waking
  • just now, has a sort of connexion--"
  • He spoke jerkily, like a man not quite sure of his breathing. He
  • stopped abruptly.
  • "I don't understand," said Graham.
  • "It will be clearer later," said Howard.
  • He glanced uneasily upward, as though he found the progress of the
  • lift slow.
  • "I shall understand better, no doubt, when I have seen my way about a
  • little," said Graham puzzled. "It will be--it is bound to be perplexing.
  • At present it is all so strange. Anything seems possible. Anything. In
  • the details even. Your counting, I understand, is different."
  • The lift stopped, and they stepped out into a narrow but very long
  • passage between high walls, along which ran an extraordinary number of
  • tubes and big cables.
  • "What a huge place this is!" said Graham. "Is it all one building? What
  • place is it?"
  • "This is one of the city ways for various public services. Light and
  • so forth."
  • "Was it a social trouble--that--in the great roadway place? How are you
  • governed? Have you still a police?"
  • "Several," said Howard.
  • "Several?"
  • "About fourteen."
  • "I don't understand."
  • "Very probably not. Our social order will probably seem very complex
  • to you. To tell you the truth, I don't understand it myself very
  • clearly. Nobody does. You will, perhaps--bye and bye. We have to go to
  • the Council."
  • Graham's attention was divided between the urgent necessity of his
  • inquiries and the people in the passages and halls they were traversing.
  • For a moment his mind would be concentrated upon Howard and the halting
  • answers he made, and then he would lose the thread in response to some
  • vivid unexpected impression. Along the passages, in the halls, half the
  • people seemed to be men in the red uniform. The pale blue canvas that had
  • been so abundant in the aisle of moving ways did not appear. Invariably
  • these men looked at him, and saluted him and Howard as they passed.
  • He had a clear vision of entering a long corridor, and there were a
  • number of girls sitting on low seats, as though in a class. He saw no
  • teacher, but only a novel apparatus from which he fancied a voice
  • proceeded. The girls regarded him and his conductor, he thought, with
  • curiosity and astonishment. But he was hurried on before he could form
  • a clear idea of the gathering. He judged they knew Howard and not
  • himself, and that they wondered who he was. This Howard, it seemed, was
  • a person of importance. But then he was also merely Graham's guardian.
  • That was odd.
  • There came a passage in twilight, and into this passage a footway hung so
  • that he could see the feet and ankles of people going to and fro thereon,
  • but no more of them. Then vague impressions of galleries and of casual
  • astonished passers-by turning round to stare after the two of them with
  • their red-clad guard.
  • The stimulus of the restoratives he had taken was only temporary. He was
  • speedily fatigued by this excessive haste. He asked Howard to slacken his
  • speed. Presently he was in a lift that had a window upon the great street
  • space, but this was glazed and did not open, and they were too high for
  • him to see the moving platforms below. But he saw people going to and fro
  • along cables and along strange, frail-looking bridges.
  • Thence they passed across the street and at a vast height above it. They
  • crossed by means of a narrow bridge closed in with glass, so clear that
  • it made him giddy even to remember it. The floor of it also was of glass.
  • From his memory of the cliffs between New Quay and Boscastle, so remote
  • in time, and so recent in his experience, it seemed to him that they
  • must be near four hundred feet above the moving ways. He stopped, looked
  • down between his legs upon the swarming blue and red multitudes, minute
  • and foreshortened, struggling and gesticulating still towards the little
  • balcony far below, a little toy balcony, it seemed, where he had so
  • recently been standing. A thin haze and the glare of the mighty globes of
  • light obscured everything. A man seated in a little openwork cradle shot
  • by from some point still higher than the little narrow bridge, rushing
  • down a cable as swiftly almost as if he were falling. Graham stopped
  • involuntarily to watch this strange passenger vanish below, and then his
  • eyes went back to the tumultuous struggle.
  • Along one of the faster ways rushed a thick crowd of red spots. This
  • broke up into individuals as it approached the balcony, and went pouring
  • down the slower ways towards the dense struggling crowd on the central
  • area. These men in red appeared to be armed with sticks or truncheons;
  • they seemed to be striking and thrusting. A great shouting, cries of
  • wrath, screaming, burst out and came up to Graham, faint and thin. "Go
  • on," cried Howard, laying hands on him.
  • Another man rushed down a cable. Graham suddenly glanced up to see whence
  • he came, and beheld through the glassy roof and the network of cables and
  • girders, dim rhythmically passing forms like the vanes of windmills, and
  • between them glimpses of a remote and pallid sky. Then Howard had thrust
  • him forward across the bridge, and he was in a little narrow passage
  • decorated with geometrical patterns.
  • "I want to see more of that," cried Graham, resisting.
  • "No, no," cried Howard, still gripping his arm. "This way. You must go
  • this way." And the men in red following them seemed ready to enforce
  • his orders.
  • Some negroes in a curious wasp-like uniform of black and yellow appeared
  • down the passage, and one hastened to throw up a sliding shutter that
  • had seemed a door to Graham, and led the way through it. Graham found
  • himself in a gallery overhanging the end of a great chamber. The
  • attendant in black and yellow crossed this, thrust up a second shutter
  • and stood waiting.
  • This place had the appearance of an ante-room. He saw a number of
  • people in the central space, and at the opposite end a large and
  • imposing doorway at the top of a flight of steps, heavily curtained but
  • giving a glimpse of some still larger hall beyond. He perceived white
  • men in red and other negroes in black and yellow standing stiffly about
  • those portals.
  • As they crossed the gallery he heard a whisper from below, "The Sleeper,"
  • and was aware of a turning of heads, a hum of observation. They entered
  • another little passage in the wall of this ante-chamber, and then he
  • found himself on an iron-railed gallery of metal that passed round the
  • side of the great hall he had already seen through the curtains. He
  • entered the place at the corner, so that he received the fullest
  • impression of its huge proportions. The black in the wasp uniform stood
  • aside like a well-trained servant, and closed the valve behind him.
  • Compared with any of the places Graham had seen thus far, this second
  • hall appeared to be decorated with extreme richness. On a pedestal at the
  • remoter end, and more brilliantly lit than any other object, was a
  • gigantic white figure of Atlas, strong and strenuous, the globe upon his
  • bowed shoulders. It was the first thing to strike his attention, it was
  • so vast, so patiently and painfully real, so white and simple. Save for
  • this figure and for a dais in the centre, the wide floor of the place was
  • a shining vacancy. The dais was remote in the greatness of the area; it
  • would have looked a mere slab of metal had it not been for the group of
  • seven men who stood about a table on it, and gave an inkling of its
  • proportions. They were all dressed in white robes, they seemed to have
  • arisen that moment from their seats, and they were regarding Graham
  • steadfastly. At the end of the table he perceived the glitter of some
  • mechanical appliances.
  • Howard led him along the end gallery until they were opposite this mighty
  • labouring figure. Then he stopped. The two men in red who had followed
  • them into the gallery came and stood on either hand of Graham.
  • "You must remain here," murmured Howard, "for a few moments," and,
  • without waiting for a reply, hurried away along the gallery.
  • "But, _why_--?" began Graham.
  • He moved as if to follow Howard, and found his path obstructed by one of
  • the men in red. "You have to wait here, Sire," said the man in red.
  • "_Why_?"
  • "Orders, Sire."
  • "Whose orders?"
  • "Our orders, Sire."
  • Graham looked his exasperation.
  • "What place is this?" he said presently. "Who are those men?"
  • "They are the lords of the Council, Sire."
  • "What Council?"
  • "_The_ Council."
  • "Oh!" said Graham, and after an equally ineffectual attempt at the other
  • man, went to the railing and stared at the distant men in white, who
  • stood watching him and whispering together.
  • The Council? He perceived there were now eight, though how the newcomer
  • had arrived he had not observed. They made no gestures of greeting; they
  • stood regarding him as in the nineteenth century a group of men might
  • have stood in the street regarding a distant balloon that had suddenly
  • floated into view. What council could it be that gathered there, that
  • little body of men beneath the significant white Atlas, secluded from
  • every eavesdropper in this impressive spaciousness? And why should he be
  • brought to them, and be looked at strangely and spoken of inaudibly?
  • Howard appeared beneath, walking quickly across the polished floor
  • towards them. As he drew near he bowed and performed certain peculiar
  • movements, apparently of a ceremonious nature. Then he ascended the steps
  • of the dais, and stood by the apparatus at the end of the table.
  • Graham watched that visible inaudible conversation. Occasionally, one of
  • the white-robed men would glance towards him. He strained his ears in
  • vain. The gesticulation of two of the speakers became animated. He
  • glanced from them to the passive faces of his attendants.... When he
  • looked again Howard was extending his hands and moving his head like a
  • man who protests. He was interrupted, it seemed, by one of the
  • white-robed men rapping the table.
  • The conversation lasted an interminable time to Graham's sense. His eyes
  • rose to the still giant at whose feet the Council sat. Thence they
  • wandered to the walls of the hall. It was decorated in long painted
  • panels of a quasi-Japanese type, many of them very beautiful. These
  • panels were grouped in a great and elaborate framing of dark metal,
  • which passed into the metallic caryatidae of the galleries, and the
  • great structural lines of the interior. The facile grace of these panels
  • enhanced the mighty white effort that laboured in the centre of the
  • scheme. Graham's eyes came back to the Council, and Howard was
  • descending the steps. As he drew nearer his features could be
  • distinguished, and Graham saw that he was flushed and blowing out his
  • cheeks. His countenance was still disturbed when presently he reappeared
  • along the gallery.
  • "This way," he said concisely, and they went on in silence to a little
  • door that opened at their approach. The two men in red stopped on either
  • side of this door. Howard and Graham passed in, and Graham, glancing
  • back, saw the white-robed Council still standing in a close group and
  • looking at him. Then the door closed behind him with a heavy thud, and
  • for the first time since his awakening he was in silence. The floor,
  • even, was noiseless to his feet.
  • Howard opened another door, and they were in the first of two contiguous
  • chambers furnished in white and green. "What Council was that?" began
  • Graham. "What were they discussing? What have they to do with me?" Howard
  • closed the door carefully, heaved a huge sigh, and said something in an
  • undertone. He walked slantingways across the room and turned, blowing out
  • his cheeks again. "Ugh!" he grunted, a man relieved.
  • Graham stood regarding him.
  • "You must understand," began Howard abruptly, avoiding Graham's eyes,
  • "that our social order is very complex. A half explanation, a bare
  • unqualified statement would give you false impressions. As a matter of
  • fact--it is a case of compound interest partly--your small fortune, and
  • the fortune of your cousin Warming which was left to you--and certain
  • other beginnings--have become very considerable. And in other ways that
  • will be hard for you to understand, you have become a person of
  • significance--of very considerable significance--involved in the
  • world's affairs."
  • He stopped.
  • "Yes?" said Graham.
  • "We have grave social troubles."
  • "Yes?"
  • "Things have come to such a pass that, in fact, it is advisable to
  • seclude you here."
  • "Keep me prisoner!" exclaimed Graham.
  • "Well--to ask you to keep in seclusion."
  • Graham turned on him. "This is strange!" he said.
  • "No harm will be done you."
  • "No harm!"
  • "But you must be kept here--"
  • "While I learn my position, I presume."
  • "Precisely."
  • "Very well then. Begin. Why _harm_?"
  • "Not now."
  • "Why not?"
  • "It is too long a story, Sire."
  • "All the more reason I should begin at once. You say I am a person of
  • importance. What was that shouting I heard? Why is a great multitude
  • shouting and excited because my trance is over, and who are the men in
  • white in that huge council chamber?"
  • "All in good time, Sire," said Howard. "But not crudely, not crudely.
  • This is one of those flimsy times when no man has a settled mind. Your
  • awakening--no one expected your awakening. The Council is consulting."
  • "What council?"
  • "The Council you saw."
  • Graham made a petulant movement. "This is not right," he said. "I should
  • be told what is happening."
  • "You must wait. Really you must wait."
  • Graham sat down abruptly. "I suppose since I have waited so long to
  • resume life," he said, "that I must wait a little longer."
  • "That is better," said Howard. "Yes, that is much better. And I must
  • leave you alone. For a space. While I attend the discussion in the
  • Council.... I am sorry."
  • He went towards the noiseless door, hesitated and vanished.
  • Graham walked to the door, tried it, found it securely fastened in some
  • way he never came to understand, turned about, paced the room restlessly,
  • made the circuit of the room, and sat down. He remained sitting for some
  • time with folded arms and knitted brow, biting his finger nails and
  • trying to piece together the kaleidoscopic impressions of this first hour
  • of awakened life; the vast mechanical spaces, the endless series of
  • chambers and passages, the great struggle that roared and splashed
  • through these strange ways, the little group of remote unsympathetic men
  • beneath the colossal Atlas, Howard's mysterious behaviour. There was an
  • inkling of some vast inheritance already in his mind--a vast inheritance
  • perhaps misapplied--of some unprecedented importance and opportunity.
  • What had he to do? And this room's secluded silence was eloquent of
  • imprisonment!
  • It came into Graham's mind with irresistible conviction that this series
  • of magnificent impressions was a dream. He tried to shut his eyes and
  • succeeded, but that time-honoured device led to no awakening.
  • Presently he began to touch and examine all the unfamiliar appointments
  • of the two small rooms in which he found himself.
  • In a long oval panel of mirror he saw himself and stopped astonished. He
  • was clad in a graceful costume of purple and bluish white, with a little
  • greyshot beard trimmed to a point, and his hair, its blackness streaked
  • now with bands of grey, arranged over his forehead in an unfamiliar but
  • pleasing manner. He seemed a man of five-and-forty perhaps. For a moment
  • he did not perceive this was himself.
  • A flash of laughter came with the recognition. "To call on old Warming
  • like this!" he exclaimed, "and make him take me out to lunch!"
  • Then he thought of meeting first one and then another of the few familiar
  • acquaintances of his early manhood, and in the midst of his amusement
  • realised that every soul with whom he might jest had died many score of
  • years ago. The thought smote him abruptly and keenly; he stopped short,
  • the expression of his face changed to a white consternation.
  • The tumultuous memory of the moving platforms and the huge façade of that
  • wonderful street reasserted itself. The shouting multitudes came back
  • clear and vivid, and those remote, inaudible, unfriendly councillors in
  • white. He felt himself a little figure, very small and ineffectual,
  • pitifully conspicuous. And all about him, the world was--_strange_.
  • CHAPTER VII
  • IN THE SILENT ROOMS
  • Presently Graham resumed his examination of his apartments. Curiosity
  • kept him moving in spite of his fatigue. The inner room, he perceived,
  • was high, and its ceiling dome shaped, with an oblong aperture in the
  • centre, opening into a funnel in which a wheel of broad vanes seemed to
  • be rotating, apparently driving the air up the shaft. The faint humming
  • note of its easy motion was the only clear sound in that quiet place. As
  • these vanes sprang up one after the other, Graham could get transient
  • glimpses of the sky. He was surprised to see a star.
  • This drew his attention to the fact that the bright lighting of these
  • rooms was due to a multitude of very faint glow lamps set about the
  • cornices. There were no windows. And he began to recall that along all
  • the vast chambers and passages he had traversed with Howard he had
  • observed no windows at all. Had there been windows? There were windows on
  • the street indeed, but were they for light? Or was the whole city lit day
  • and night for evermore, so that there was no night there?
  • And another thing dawned upon him. There was no fireplace in either room.
  • Was the season summer, and were these merely summer apartments, or was
  • the whole city uniformly heated or cooled? He became interested in these
  • questions, began examining the smooth texture of the walls, the simply
  • constructed bed, the ingenious arrangements by which the labour of
  • bedroom service was practically abolished. And over everything was a
  • curious absence of deliberate ornament, a bare grace of form and colour,
  • that he found very pleasing to the eye. There were several very
  • comfortable chairs, a light table on silent runners carrying several
  • bottles of fluids and glasses, and two plates bearing a clear substance
  • like jelly. Then he noticed there were no books, no newspapers, no
  • writing materials. "The world has changed indeed," he said.
  • He observed one entire side of the outer room was set with rows of
  • peculiar double cylinders inscribed with green lettering on white that
  • harmonized with the decorative scheme of the room, and in the centre of
  • this side projected a little apparatus about a yard square and having a
  • white smooth face to the room. A chair faced this. He had a transitory
  • idea that these cylinders might be books, or a modern substitute for
  • books, but at first it did not seem so.
  • The lettering on the cylinders puzzled him. At first sight it seemed like
  • Russian. Then he noticed a suggestion of mutilated English about certain
  • of the words.
  • "Thi Man huwdbi Kin" forced itself on him as "The Man who would be King."
  • "Phonetic spelling," he said. He remembered reading a story with that
  • title, then he recalled the story vividly, one of the best stories in the
  • world. But this thing before him was not a book as he understood it. He
  • puzzled out the titles of two adjacent cylinders. "The Heart of Darkness"
  • he had never heard of before nor "The Madonna of the Future"--no doubt if
  • they were indeed stories, they were by post-Victorian authors.
  • He puzzled over this peculiar cylinder for some time and replaced it.
  • Then he turned to the square apparatus and examined that. He opened a
  • sort of lid and found one of the double cylinders within, and on the
  • upper edge a little stud like the stud of an electric bell. He pressed
  • this and a rapid clicking began and ceased. He became aware of voices and
  • music, and noticed a play of colour on the smooth front face. He suddenly
  • realised what this might be, and stepped back to regard it.
  • On the flat surface was now a little picture, very vividly coloured, and
  • in this picture were figures that moved. Not only did they move, but they
  • were conversing in clear small voices. It was exactly like reality viewed
  • through an inverted opera glass and heard through a long tube. His
  • interest was seized at once by the situation, which presented a man
  • pacing up and down and vociferating angry things to a pretty but petulant
  • woman. Both were in the picturesque costume that seemed so strange to
  • Graham. "I have worked," said the man, "but what have you been doing?"
  • "Ah!" said Graham. He forgot everything else, and sat down in the chair.
  • Within five minutes he heard himself, named, heard "when the Sleeper
  • wakes," used jestingly as a proverb for remote postponement, and passed
  • himself by, a thing remote and incredible. But in a little while he knew
  • those two people like intimate friends.
  • At last the miniature drama came to an end, and the square face of the
  • apparatus was blank again.
  • It was a strange world into which he had been permitted to see,
  • unscrupulous, pleasure seeking, energetic, subtle, a world too of dire
  • economic struggle; there were allusions he did not understand, incidents
  • that conveyed strange suggestions of altered moral ideals, flashes of
  • dubious enlightenment. The blue canvas that bulked so largely in his
  • first impression of the city ways appeared again and again as the costume
  • of the common people. He had no doubt the story was contemporary, and its
  • intense realism was undeniable. And the end had been a tragedy that
  • oppressed him. He sat staring at the blankness.
  • He started and rubbed his eyes. He had been so absorbed in the latter-day
  • substitute for a novel, that he awoke to the little green and white room
  • with more than a touch of the surprise of his first awakening.
  • He stood up, and abruptly he was back in his own wonderland. The
  • clearness of the kinetoscope drama passed, and the struggle in the vast
  • place of streets, the ambiguous Council, the swift phases of his waking
  • hour, came back. These people had spoken of the Council with suggestions
  • of a vague universality of power. And they had spoken of the Sleeper; it
  • had not really struck him vividly at the time that he was the Sleeper. He
  • had to recall precisely what they had said....
  • He walked into the bedroom and peered up through the quick intervals of
  • the revolving fan. As the fan swept round, a dim turmoil like the noise
  • of machinery came in rhythmic eddies. All else was silence. Though the
  • perpetual day still irradiated his apartments, he perceived the little
  • intermittent strip of sky was now deep blue--black almost, with a dust of
  • little stars....
  • He resumed his examination of the rooms. He could find no way of opening
  • the padded door, no bell nor other means of calling for attendance. His
  • feeling of wonder was in abeyance; but he was curious, anxious for
  • information. He wanted to know exactly how he stood to these new things.
  • He tried to compose himself to wait until someone came to him. Presently
  • he became restless and eager for information, for distraction, for fresh
  • sensations.
  • He went back to the apparatus in the other room, and had soon puzzled out
  • the method of replacing the cylinders by others. As he did so, it came
  • into his mind that it must be these little appliances had fixed the
  • language so that it was still clear and understandable after two hundred
  • years. The haphazard cylinders he substituted displayed a musical
  • fantasia. At first it was beautiful, and then it was sensuous. He
  • presently recognised what appeared to him to be an altered version of the
  • story of Tannhauser. The music was unfamiliar. But the rendering was
  • realistic, and with a contemporary unfamiliarity. Tannhauser did not go
  • to a Venusberg, but to a Pleasure City. What was a Pleasure City? A
  • dream, surely, the fancy of a fantastic, voluptuous writer.
  • He became interested, curious. The story developed with a flavour of
  • strangely twisted sentimentality. Suddenly he did not like it. He liked
  • it less as it proceeded.
  • He had a revulsion of feeling. These were no pictures, no idealisations,
  • but photographed realities. He wanted no more of the twenty-second
  • century Venusberg. He forgot the part played by the model in nineteenth
  • century art, and gave way to an archaic indignation. He rose, angry and
  • half ashamed at himself for witnessing this thing even in solitude. He
  • pulled forward the apparatus, and with some violence sought for a means
  • of stopping its action. Something snapped. A violet spark stung and
  • convulsed his arm and the thing was still. When he attempted next day to
  • replace these Tannhauser cylinders by another pair, he found the
  • apparatus broken....
  • He struck out a path oblique to the room and paced to and fro, struggling
  • with intolerable vast impressions. The things he had derived from the
  • cylinders and the things he had seen, conflicted, confused him. It seemed
  • to him the most amazing thing of all that in his thirty years of life he
  • had never tried to shape a picture of these coming times. "We were making
  • the future," he said, "and hardly any of us troubled to think what future
  • we were making. And here it is!"
  • "What have they got to, what has been done? How do I come into the midst
  • of it all?" The vastness of street and house he was prepared for, the
  • multitudes of people. But conflicts in the city ways! And the
  • systematised sensuality of a class of rich men!
  • He thought of Bellamy, the hero of whose Socialistic Utopia had so oddly
  • anticipated this actual experience. But here was no Utopia, no
  • Socialistic state. He had already seen enough to realise that the ancient
  • antithesis of luxury, waste and sensuality on the one hand and abject
  • poverty on the other, still prevailed. He knew enough of the essential
  • factors of life to understand that correlation. And not only were the
  • buildings of the city gigantic and the crowds in the street gigantic, but
  • the voices he had heard in the ways, the uneasiness of Howard, the very
  • atmosphere spoke of gigantic discontent. What country was he in? Still
  • England it seemed, and yet strangely "un-English." His mind glanced at
  • the rest of the world, and saw only an enigmatical veil.
  • He prowled about his apartment, examining everything as a caged animal
  • might do. He was very tired, with that feverish exhaustion that does not
  • admit of rest. He listened for long spaces under the ventilator to catch
  • some distant echo of the tumults he felt must be proceeding in the city.
  • He began to talk to himself. "Two hundred and three years!" he said to
  • himself over and over again, laughing stupidly. "Then I am two hundred
  • and thirty-three years old! The oldest inhabitant. Surely they haven't
  • reversed the tendency of our time and gone back to the rule of the
  • oldest. My claims are indisputable. Mumble, mumble. I remember the
  • Bulgarian atrocities as though it was yesterday. 'Tis a great age! Ha
  • ha!" He was surprised at first to hear himself laughing, and then laughed
  • again deliberately and louder. Then he realised that he was behaving
  • foolishly. "Steady," he said. "Steady!"
  • His pacing became more regular. "This new world," he said. "I don't
  • understand it. _Why_? ... But it is all _why_!"
  • "I suppose they can fly and do all sorts of things. Let me try and
  • remember just how it began."
  • He was surprised at first to find how vague the memories of his first
  • thirty years had become. He remembered fragments, for the most part
  • trivial moments, things of no great importance that he had observed. His
  • boyhood seemed the most accessible at first, he recalled school books and
  • certain lessons in mensuration. Then he revived the more salient features
  • of his life, memories of the wife long since dead, her magic influence
  • now gone beyond corruption, of his rivals and friends and betrayers, of
  • the decision of this issue and that, and then of his last years of
  • misery, of fluctuating resolves, and at last of his strenuous studies. In
  • a little while he perceived he had it all again; dim perhaps, like metal
  • long laid aside, but in no way defective or injured, capable of
  • re-polishing. And the hue of it was a deepening misery. Was it worth
  • re-polishing? By a miracle he had been lifted out of a life that had
  • become intolerable....
  • He reverted to his present condition. He wrestled with the facts in vain.
  • It became an inextricable tangle. He saw the sky through the ventilator
  • pink with dawn. An old persuasion came out of the dark recesses of his
  • memory. "I must sleep," he said. It appeared as a delightful relief from
  • this mental distress and from the growing pain and heaviness of his
  • limbs. He went to the strange little bed, lay down and was presently
  • asleep....
  • He was destined to become very familiar indeed with these apartments
  • before he left them, for he remained imprisoned for three days. During
  • that time no one, except Howard, entered the rooms. The marvel of his
  • fate mingled with and in some way minimised the marvel of his survival.
  • He had awakened to mankind it seemed only to be snatched away into this
  • unaccountable solitude. Howard came regularly with subtly sustaining and
  • nutritive fluids, and light and pleasant foods, quite strange to Graham.
  • He always closed the door carefully as he entered. On matters of detail
  • he was increasingly obliging, but the bearing of Graham on the great
  • issues that were evidently being contested so closely beyond the
  • sound-proof walls that enclosed him, he would not elucidate. He evaded,
  • as politely as possible, every question on the position of affairs in the
  • outer world.
  • And in those three days Graham's incessant thoughts went far and wide.
  • All that he had seen, all this elaborate contrivance to prevent him
  • seeing, worked together in his mind. Almost every possible interpretation
  • of his position he debated--even as it chanced, the right interpretation.
  • Things that presently happened to him, came to him at last credible, by
  • virtue of this seclusion. When at length the moment of his release
  • arrived, it found him prepared....
  • Howard's bearing went far to deepen Graham's impression of his own
  • strange importance; the door between its opening and closing seemed to
  • admit with him a breath of momentous happening. His enquiries became
  • more definite and searching. Howard retreated through protests and
  • difficulties. The awakening was unforeseen, he repeated; it happened
  • to have fallen in with the trend of a social convulsion. "To explain
  • it I must tell you the history of a gross and a half of years,"
  • protested Howard.
  • "The thing is this," said Graham. "You are afraid of something I shall
  • do. In some way I am arbitrator--I might be arbitrator."
  • "It is not that. But you have--I may tell you this much--the automatic
  • increase of your property puts great possibilities of interference in
  • your hands. And in certain other ways you have influence, with your
  • eighteenth century notions."
  • "Nineteenth century," corrected Graham.
  • "With your old world notions, anyhow, ignorant as you are of every
  • feature of our State."
  • "Am I a fool?"
  • "Certainly not."
  • "Do I seem to be the sort of man who would act rashly?"
  • "You were never expected to act at all. No one counted on your
  • awakening. No one dreamt you would ever awake. The Council had surrounded
  • you with antiseptic conditions. As a matter of fact, we thought that you
  • were dead--a mere arrest of decay. And--but it is too complex. We dare
  • not suddenly---while you are still half awake."
  • "It won't do," said Graham. "Suppose it is as you say--why am I not being
  • crammed night and day with facts and warnings and all the wisdom of the
  • time to fit me for my responsibilities? Am I any wiser now than two days
  • ago, if it is two days, when I awoke?"
  • Howard pulled his lip.
  • "I am beginning to feel--every hour I feel more clearly--a system of
  • concealment of which you are the face. Is this Council, or committee, or
  • whatever they are, cooking the accounts of my estate? Is that it?"
  • "That note of suspicion--" said Howard.
  • "Ugh!" said Graham. "Now, mark my words, it will be ill for those who
  • have put me here. It will be ill. I am alive. Make no doubt of it, I am
  • alive. Every day my pulse is stronger and my mind clearer and more
  • vigorous. No more quiescence. I am a man come back to life. And I want
  • to _live_--"
  • "_Live_!"
  • Howard's face lit with an idea. He came towards Graham and spoke in an
  • easy confidential tone.
  • "The Council secludes you here for your good. You are restless.
  • Naturally--an energetic man! You find it dull here. But we are anxious
  • that everything you may desire--every desire--every sort of desire ...
  • There may be something. Is there any sort of company?"
  • He paused meaningly.
  • "Yes," said Graham thoughtfully. "There is."
  • "Ah! _Now_! We have treated you neglectfully."
  • "The crowds in yonder streets of yours."
  • "That," said Howard, "I am afraid--But--"
  • Graham began pacing the room. Howard stood near the door watching him.
  • The implication of Howard's suggestion was only half evident to Graham.
  • Company? Suppose he were to accept the proposal, demand some sort of
  • _company_? Would there be any possibilities of gathering from the
  • conversation of this additional person some vague inkling of the struggle
  • that had broken out so vividly at his waking moment? He meditated again,
  • and the suggestion took colour. He turned on Howard abruptly.
  • "What do you mean by company?"
  • Howard raised his eyes and shrugged his shoulders. "Human beings," he
  • said, with a curious smile on his heavy face. "Our social ideas," he
  • said, "have a certain increased liberality, perhaps, in comparison with
  • your times. If a man wishes to relieve such a tedium as this--by feminine
  • society, for instance. We think it no scandal. We have cleared our minds
  • of formulae. There is in our city a class, a necessary class, no longer
  • despised--discreet--"
  • Graham stopped dead.
  • "It would pass the time," said Howard. "It is a thing I should perhaps
  • have thought of before, but, as a matter of fact, so much is happening--"
  • He indicated the exterior world.
  • Graham hesitated. For a moment the figure of a possible woman dominated
  • his mind with an intense attraction. Then he flashed into anger.
  • "_No_!" he shouted.
  • He began striding rapidly up and down the room. "Everything you say,
  • everything you do, convinces me--of some great issue in which I am
  • concerned. I do not want to pass the time, as you call it. Yes, I know.
  • Desire and indulgence are life in a sense--and Death! Extinction! In my
  • life before I slept I had worked out that pitiful question. I will not
  • begin again. There is a city, a multitude--. And meanwhile I am here like
  • a rabbit in a bag."
  • His rage surged high. He choked for a moment and began to wave his
  • clenched fists. He gave way to an anger fit, he swore archaic curses. His
  • gestures had the quality of physical threats.
  • "I do not know who your party may be. I am in the dark, and you keep me
  • in the dark. But I know this, that I am secluded here for no good
  • purpose. For no good purpose. I warn you, I warn you of the consequences.
  • Once I come at my power--"
  • He realised that to threaten thus might be a danger to himself. He
  • stopped. Howard stood regarding him with a curious expression.
  • "I take it this is a message to the Council," said Howard.
  • Graham had a momentary impulse to leap upon the man, fell or stun him. It
  • must have shown upon his face; at any rate Howard's movement was quick.
  • In a second the noiseless door had closed again, and the man from the
  • nineteenth century was alone.
  • For a moment he stood rigid, with clenched hands half raised. Then he
  • flung them down. "What a fool I have been!" he said, and gave way to his
  • anger again, stamping about the room and shouting curses.... For a long
  • time he kept himself in a sort of frenzy, raging at his position, at his
  • own folly, at the knaves who had imprisoned him. He did this because he
  • did not want to look calmly at his position. He clung to his
  • anger--because he was afraid of fear.
  • Presently he found himself reasoning with himself. This imprisonment
  • was unaccountable, but no doubt the legal forms--new legal forms--of
  • the time permitted it. It must, of course, be legal. These people were
  • two hundred years further on in the march of civilisation than the
  • Victorian generation. It was not likely they would be less--humane. Yet
  • they had cleared their minds of formulae! Was humanity a formula as
  • well as chastity?
  • His imagination set to work to suggest things that might be done to him.
  • The attempts of his reason to dispose of these suggestions, though for
  • the most part logically valid, were quite unavailing. "Why should
  • anything be done to me?"
  • "If the worst comes to the worst," he found himself saying at last, "I
  • can give up what they want. But what do they want? And why don't they ask
  • me for it instead of cooping me up?"
  • He returned to his former preoccupation with the Council's possible
  • intentions. He began to reconsider the details of Howard's behaviour,
  • sinister glances, inexplicable hesitations. Then, for a time, his mind
  • circled about the idea of escaping from these rooms; but whither could he
  • escape into this vast, crowded world? He would be worse off than a Saxon
  • yeoman suddenly dropped into nineteenth century London. And besides, how
  • could anyone escape from these rooms?
  • "How can it benefit anyone if harm should happen to me?"
  • He thought of the tumult, the great social trouble of which he was so
  • unaccountably the axis. A text, irrelevant enough, and yet curiously
  • insistent, came floating up out of the darkness of his memory. This also
  • a Council had said:
  • "It is expedient for us that one man should die for the people."
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • THE ROOF SPACES
  • As the fans in the circular aperture of the inner room rotated and
  • permitted glimpses of the night, dim sounds drifted in thereby. And
  • Graham, standing underneath, was startled by the sound of a voice.
  • He peered up and saw in the intervals of the rotation, dark and dim, the
  • face and shoulders of a man regarding him. Then a dark hand was extended,
  • the swift vane struck it, swung round and beat on with a little brownish
  • patch on the edge of its thin blade, and something began to fall
  • therefrom upon the floor, dripping silently.
  • Graham looked down, and there were spots of blood at his feet. He looked
  • up again in a strange excitement. The figure had gone.
  • He remained motionless--his every sense intent upon the flickering patch
  • of darkness. He became aware of some faint, remote, dark specks floating
  • lightly through the outer air. They came down towards him, fitfully,
  • eddyingly, and passed aside out of the uprush from the fan. A gleam of
  • light flickered, the specks flashed white, and then the darkness came
  • again. Warmed and lit as he was, he perceived that it was snowing within
  • a few feet of him.
  • Graham walked across the room and came back to the ventilator again. He
  • saw the head of a man pass near. There was a sound of whispering. Then a
  • smart blow on some metallic substance, effort, voices, and the vanes
  • stopped. A gust of snowflakes whirled into the room, and vanished before
  • they touched the floor. "Don't be afraid," said a voice.
  • Graham stood under the vane. "Who are you?" he whispered.
  • For a moment there was nothing but a swaying of the fan, and then the
  • head of a man was thrust cautiously into the opening. His face
  • appeared nearly inverted to Graham; his dark hair was wet with
  • dissolving flakes of snow upon it. His arm went up into the darkness
  • holding something unseen. He had a youthful face and bright eyes, and
  • the veins of his forehead were swollen. He seemed to be exerting
  • himself to maintain his position.
  • For several seconds neither he nor Graham spoke.
  • "You were the Sleeper?" said the stranger at last.
  • "Yes," said Graham. "What do you want with me?"
  • "I come from Ostrog, Sire."
  • "Ostrog?"
  • The man in the ventilator twisted his head round so that his profile was
  • towards Graham. He appeared to be listening. Suddenly there was a hasty
  • exclamation, and the intruder sprang back just in time to escape the
  • sweep of the released fan. And when Graham peered up there was nothing
  • visible but the slowly falling snow.
  • It was perhaps a quarter of an hour before anything returned to the
  • ventilator. But at last came the same metallic interference again; the
  • fans stopped and the face reappeared. Graham had remained all this time
  • in the same place, alert and tremulously excited.
  • "Who are you? What do you want?" he said.
  • "We want to speak to you, Sire," said the intruder. "We want--I
  • can't hold the thing. We have been trying to find a way to you--these
  • three days."
  • "Is it rescue?" whispered Graham. "Escape?"
  • "Yes, Sire. If you will."
  • "You are my party--the party of the Sleeper?"
  • "Yes, Sire."
  • "What am I to do?" said Graham.
  • There was a struggle. The stranger's arm appeared, and his hand was
  • bleeding. His knees came into view over the edge of the funnel. "Stand
  • away from me," he said, and he dropped rather heavily on his hands and
  • one shoulder at Graham's feet. The released ventilator whirled noisily.
  • The stranger rolled over, sprang up nimbly and stood panting, hand to a
  • bruised shoulder, and with his bright eyes on Graham.
  • "You are indeed the Sleeper," he said. "I saw you asleep. When it was the
  • law that anyone might see you."
  • "I am the man who was in the trance," said Graham. "They have imprisoned
  • me here. I have been here since I awoke--at least three days."
  • The intruder seemed about to speak, heard something, glanced swiftly at
  • the door, and suddenly left Graham and ran towards it, shouting quick
  • incoherent words. A bright wedge of steel flashed in his hand, and he
  • began tap, tap, a quick succession of blows upon the hinges. "Mind!"
  • cried a voice. "Oh!" The voice came from above.
  • Graham glanced up, saw the soles of two feet, ducked, was struck on the
  • shoulder by one of them, and a heavy weight bore him to the earth. He
  • fell on his knees and forward, and the weight went over his head. He
  • knelt up and saw a second man from above seated before him.
  • "I did not see you, Sire," panted the man. He rose and assisted
  • Graham to rise. "Are you hurt, Sire?" he panted. A succession of heavy
  • blows on the ventilator began, something fell close to Graham's face,
  • and a shivering edge of white metal danced, fell over, and lay fiat
  • upon the floor.
  • "What is this?" cried Graham, confused and looking at the ventilator.
  • "Who are you? What are you going to do? Remember, I understand nothing."
  • "Stand back," said the stranger, and drew him from under the ventilator
  • as another fragment of metal fell heavily.
  • "We want you to come, Sire," panted the newcomer, and Graham glancing at
  • his face again, saw a new cut had changed from white to red on his
  • forehead, and a couple of little trickles of blood starting therefrom.
  • "Your people call for you."
  • "Come where? My people?"
  • "To the hall about the markets. Your life is in danger here. We have
  • spies. We learned but just in time. The Council has decided--this very
  • day--either to drug or kill you. And everything is ready. The people are
  • drilled, the Wind-Vane police, the engineers, and half the way-gearers
  • are with us. We have the halls crowded--shouting. The whole city shouts
  • against the Council. We have arms." He wiped the blood with his hand.
  • "Your life here is not worth--"
  • "But why arms?"
  • "The people have risen to protect you, Sire. What?"
  • He turned quickly as the man who had first come down made a hissing with
  • his teeth. Graham saw the latter start back, gesticulate to them to
  • conceal themselves, and move as if to hide behind the opening door.
  • As he did so Howard appeared, a little tray in one hand and his heavy
  • face downcast. He started, looked up, the door slammed behind him, the
  • tray tilted side-ways, and the steel wedge struck him behind the ear. He
  • went down like a felled tree, and lay as he fell athwart the floor of the
  • outer room. The man who had struck him bent hastily, studied his face for
  • a moment, rose, and returned to his work at the door.
  • "Your poison!" said a voice in Graham's ear.
  • Then abruptly they were in darkness. The innumerable cornice lights had
  • been extinguished. Graham saw the aperture of the ventilator with ghostly
  • snow whirling above it and dark figures moving hastily. Three knelt on
  • the vane. Some dim thing--a ladder--was being lowered through the
  • opening, and a hand appeared holding a fitful yellow light.
  • He had a moment of hesitation. But the manner of these men, their swift
  • alacrity, their words, marched so completely with his own fears of the
  • Council, with his idea and hope of a rescue, that it lasted not a moment.
  • And his people awaited him!
  • "I do not understand," he said. "I trust. Tell me what to do."
  • The man with the cut brow gripped Graham's arm. "Clamber up the ladder,"
  • he whispered. "Quick. They will have heard--"
  • Graham felt for the ladder with extended hands, put his foot on the
  • lower rung, and, turning his head, saw over the shoulder of the nearest
  • man, in the yellow flicker of the light, the first-comer astride over
  • Howard and still working at the door. Graham turned to the ladder again,
  • and was thrust by his conductor and helped up by those above, and then
  • he was standing on something hard and cold and slippery outside the
  • ventilating funnel.
  • He shivered. He was aware of a great difference in the temperature. Half
  • a dozen men stood about him, and light flakes of snow touched hands and
  • face and melted. For a moment it was dark, then for a flash a ghastly
  • violet white, and then everything was dark again.
  • He saw he had come out upon the roof of the vast city structure which had
  • replaced the miscellaneous houses, streets and open spaces of Victorian
  • London. The place upon which he stood was level, with huge serpentine
  • cables lying athwart it in every direction. The circular wheels of a
  • number of windmills loomed indistinct and gigantic through the darkness
  • and snowfall, and roared with a varying loudness as the fitful wind rose
  • and fell. Some way off an intermittent white light smote up from below,
  • touched the snow eddies with a transient glitter, and made an evanescent
  • spectre in the night; and here and there, low down, some vaguely outlined
  • wind-driven mechanism flickered with livid sparks.
  • All this he appreciated in a fragmentary manner as his rescuers stood
  • about him. Someone threw a thick soft cloak of fur-like texture about
  • him, and fastened it by buckled straps at waist and shoulders. Things
  • were said briefly, decisively. Someone thrust him forward.
  • Before his mind was yet clear a dark shape gripped his arm. "This way,"
  • said this shape, urging him along, and pointed Graham across the flat
  • roof in the direction of a dim semicircular haze of light. Graham obeyed.
  • "Mind!" said a voice, as Graham stumbled against a cable. "Between them
  • and not across them," said the voice. And, "We must hurry."
  • "Where are the people?" said Graham. "The people you said awaited me?"
  • The stranger did not answer. He left Graham's arm as the path grew
  • narrower, and led the way with rapid strides. Graham followed blindly. In
  • a minute he found himself running. "Are the others coming?" he panted,
  • but received no reply. His companion glanced back and ran on. They came
  • to a sort of pathway of open metal-work, transverse to the direction they
  • had come, and they turned aside to follow this. Graham looked back, but
  • the snowstorm had hidden the others.
  • "Come on!" said his guide. Running now, they drew near a little windmill
  • spinning high in the air. "Stoop," said Graham's guide, and they avoided
  • an endless band running roaring up to the shaft of the vane. "This way!"
  • and they were ankle deep in a gutter full of drifted thawing snow,
  • between two low walls of metal that presently rose waist high. "I will go
  • first," said the guide. Graham drew his cloak about him and followed.
  • Then suddenly came a narrow abyss across which the gutter leapt to the
  • snowy darkness of the further side. Graham peeped over the side once and
  • the gulf was black. For a moment he regretted his flight. He dared not
  • look again, and his brain spun as he waded through the half liquid snow.
  • Then out of the gutter they clambered and hurried across a wide flat
  • space damp with thawing snow, and for half its extent dimly translucent
  • to lights that went to and fro underneath. He hesitated at this unstable
  • looking substance, but his guide ran on unheeding, and so they came to
  • and clambered up slippery steps to the rim of a great dome of glass.
  • Round this they went. Far below a number of people seemed to be dancing,
  • and music filtered through the dome.... Graham fancied he heard a
  • shouting through the snowstorm, and his guide hurried him on with a new
  • spurt of haste. They clambered panting to a space of huge windmills, one
  • so vast that only the lower edge of its vanes came rushing into sight and
  • rushed up again and was lost in the night and the snow. They hurried for
  • a time through the colossal metallic tracery of its supports, and came at
  • last above a place of moving platforms like the place into which Graham
  • had looked from the balcony. They crawled across the sloping transparency
  • that covered this street of platforms, crawling on hands and knees
  • because of the slipperiness of the snowfall.
  • For the most part the glass was bedewed, and Graham saw only hazy
  • suggestions of the forms below, but near the pitch of the transparent
  • roof the glass was clear, and he found himself looking sheerly down
  • upon it all. For awhile, in spite of the urgency of his guide, he gave
  • way to vertigo and lay spread-eagled on the glass, sick and paralysed.
  • Far below, mere stirring specks and dots, went the people of the
  • unsleeping city in their perpetual daylight, and the moving platforms
  • ran on their incessant journey. Messengers and men on unknown
  • businesses shot along the drooping cables and the frail bridges were
  • crowded with men. It was like peering into a gigantic glass hive, and
  • it lay vertically below him with only a tough glass of unknown
  • thickness to save him from a fall. The street showed warm and lit, and
  • Graham was wet now to the skin with thawing snow, and his feet were
  • numbed with cold. For a space he could not move. "Come on!" cried his
  • guide, with terror in his voice. "Come on!"
  • Graham reached the pitch of the roof by an effort.
  • Over the ridge, following his guide's example, he turned about and slid
  • backward down the opposite slope very swiftly, amid a little avalanche of
  • snow. While he was sliding he thought of what would happen if some broken
  • gap should come in his way. At the edge he stumbled to his feet ankle
  • deep in slush, thanking heaven for an opaque footing again. His guide was
  • already clambering up a metal screen to a level expanse.
  • Through the spare snowflakes above this loomed another line of vast
  • windmills, and then suddenly the amorphous tumult of the rotating wheels
  • was pierced with a deafening sound. It was a mechanical shrilling of
  • extraordinary intensity that seemed to come simultaneously from every
  • point of the compass.
  • "They have missed us already!" cried Graham's guide in an accent of
  • terror, and suddenly, with a blinding flash, the night became day.
  • Above the driving snow, from the summits of the wind-wheels, appeared
  • vast masts carrying globes of livid light. They receded in illimitable
  • vistas in every direction. As far as his eye could penetrate the snowfall
  • they glared.
  • "Get on this," cried Graham's conductor, and thrust him forward to a long
  • grating of snowless metal that ran like a band between two slightly
  • sloping expanses of snow. It felt warm to Graham's benumbed feet, and a
  • faint eddy of steam rose from it.
  • "Come on!" shouted his guide ten yards off, and, without waiting, ran
  • swiftly through the incandescent glare towards the iron supports of the
  • next range of wind-wheels. Graham, recovering from his astonishment,
  • followed as fast, convinced of his imminent capture....
  • In a score of seconds they were within a tracery of glare and black
  • shadows shot with moving bars beneath the monstrous wheels. Graham's
  • conductor ran on for some time, and suddenly darted sideways and vanished
  • into a black shadow in the corner of the foot of a huge support. In
  • another moment Graham was beside him.
  • They cowered panting and stared out.
  • The scene upon which Graham looked was very wild and strange. The snow
  • had now almost ceased; only a belated flake passed now and again across
  • the picture. But the broad stretch of level before them was a ghastly
  • white, broken only by gigantic masses and moving shapes and lengthy
  • strips of impenetrable darkness, vast ungainly Titans of shadow. All
  • about them, huge metallic structures, iron girders, inhumanly vast as it
  • seemed to him, interlaced, and the edges of wind-wheels, scarcely moving
  • in the lull, passed in great shining curves steeper and steeper up into a
  • luminous haze. Wherever the snow-spangled light struck down, beams and
  • girders, and incessant bands running with a halting, indomitable
  • resolution, passed upward and downward into the black. And with all that
  • mighty activity, with an omnipresent sense of motive and design, this
  • snow-clad desolation of mechanism seemed void of all human presence save
  • themselves, seemed as trackless and deserted and unfrequented by men as
  • some inaccessible Alpine snowfield.
  • "They will be chasing us," cried the leader. "We are scarcely halfway
  • there yet. Cold as it is we must hide here for a space--at least until it
  • snows more thickly again."
  • His teeth chattered in his head.
  • "Where are the markets?" asked Graham staring out. "Where are all
  • the people?"
  • The other made no answer.
  • "_Look_!" whispered Graham, crouched close, and became very still.
  • The snow had suddenly become thick again, and sliding with the whirling
  • eddies out of the black pit of the sky came something, vague and large
  • and very swift. It came down in a steep curve and swept round, wide wings
  • extended and a trail of white condensing steam behind it, rose with an
  • easy swiftness and went gliding up the air, swept horizontally forward in
  • a wide curve, and vanished again in the steaming specks of snow. And,
  • through the ribs of its body, Graham saw two little men, very minute and
  • active, searching the snowy areas about him, as it seemed to him, with
  • field glasses. For a second they were clear, then hazy through a thick
  • whirl of snow, then small and distant, and in a minute they were gone.
  • "_Now_!" cried his companion. "Come!"
  • He pulled Graham's sleeve, and incontinently the two were running
  • headlong down the arcade of iron-work beneath the wind-wheels. Graham,
  • running blindly, collided with his leader, who had turned back on him
  • suddenly. He found himself within a dozen yards of a black chasm. It
  • extended as far as he could see right and left. It seemed to cut off
  • their progress in either direction.
  • "Do as I do," whispered his guide. He lay down and crawled to the edge,
  • thrust his head over and twisted until one leg hung. He seemed to feel
  • for something with his foot, found it, and went sliding over the edge
  • into the gulf. His head reappeared. "It is a ledge," he whispered. "In
  • the dark all the way along. Do as I did."
  • Graham hesitated, went down upon all fours, crawled to the edge, and
  • peered into a velvety blackness. For a sickly moment he had courage
  • neither to go on nor retreat, then he sat and hung his leg down, felt his
  • guide's hands pulling at him, had a horrible sensation of sliding over
  • the edge into the unfathomable, splashed, and felt himself in a slushy
  • gutter, impenetrably dark.
  • "This way," whispered the voice, and he began crawling along the gutter
  • through the trickling thaw, pressing himself against the wall. They
  • continued along it for some minutes. He seemed to pass through a hundred
  • stages of misery, to pass minute after minute through a hundred degrees
  • of cold, damp, and exhaustion. In a little while he ceased to feel his
  • hands and feet.
  • The gutter sloped downwards. He observed that they were now many feet
  • below the edge of the buildings. Rows of spectral white shapes like the
  • ghosts of blind-drawn windows rose above them. They came to the end of a
  • cable fastened above one of these white windows, dimly visible and
  • dropping into impenetrable shadows. Suddenly his hand came against his
  • guide's. "_Still_!" whispered the latter very softly.
  • He looked up with a start and saw the huge wings of the flying machine
  • gliding slowly and noiselessly overhead athwart the broad band of
  • snow-flecked grey-blue sky. In a moment it was hidden again.
  • "Keep still; they were just turning."
  • For awhile both were motionless, then Graham's companion stood up, and
  • reaching towards the fastenings of the cable fumbled with some
  • indistinct tackle.
  • "What is that?" asked Graham.
  • The only answer was a faint cry. The man crouched motionless. Graham
  • peered and saw his face dimly. He was staring down the long ribbon of
  • sky, and Graham, following his eyes, saw the flying machine small and
  • faint and remote. Then he saw that the wings spread on either side, that
  • it headed towards them, that every moment it grew larger. It was
  • following the edge of the chasm towards them.
  • The man's movements became convulsive. He thrust two cross bars into
  • Graham's hand. Graham could not see them, he ascertained their form by
  • feeling. They were slung by thin cords to the cable. On the cord were
  • hand grips of some soft elastic substance. "Put the cross between your
  • legs," whispered the guide hysterically, "and grip the holdfasts. Grip
  • tightly, grip!"
  • Graham did as he was told.
  • "Jump," said the voice. "In heaven's name, jump!"
  • For one momentous second Graham could not speak. He was glad afterwards
  • that darkness hid his face. He said nothing. He began to tremble
  • violently. He looked sideways at the swift shadow that swallowed up the
  • sky as it rushed upon him.
  • "Jump! Jump--in God's name! Or they will have us," cried Graham's guide,
  • and in the violence of his passion thrust him forward.
  • Graham tottered convulsively, gave a sobbing cry, a cry in spite of
  • himself, and then, as the flying machine swept over them, fell forward
  • into the pit of that darkness, seated on the cross wood and holding the
  • ropes with the clutch of death. Something cracked, something rapped
  • smartly against a wall. He heard the pulley of the cradle hum on its
  • rope. He heard the aeronauts shout. He felt a pair of knees digging into
  • his back.... He was sweeping headlong through the air, falling through
  • the air. All his strength was in his hands. He would have screamed but he
  • had no breath.
  • He shot into a blinding light that made him grip the tighter. He
  • recognised the great passage with the running ways, the hanging lights
  • and interlacing girders. They rushed upward and by him. He had a
  • momentary impression of a great round mouth yawning to swallow him up.
  • He was in the dark again, falling, falling, gripping with aching hands,
  • and behold! a clap of sound, a burst of light, and he was in a brightly
  • lit hall with a roaring multitude of people beneath his feet. The people!
  • His people! A proscenium, a stage rushed up towards him, and his cable
  • swept down to a circular aperture to the right of this. He felt he was
  • travelling slower, and suddenly very much slower. He distinguished shouts
  • of "Saved! The Master. He is safe!" The stage rushed up towards him with
  • rapidly diminishing swiftness. Then--
  • He heard the man clinging behind him shout as if suddenly terrified, and
  • this shout was echoed by a shout from below. He felt that he was no
  • longer gliding along the cable but falling with it. There was a tumult of
  • yells, screams, and cries. He felt something soft against his extended
  • hand, and the impact of a broken fall quivering through his arm....
  • He wanted to be still and the people were lifting him. He believed
  • afterwards he was carried to the platform and given some drink, but he
  • was never sure. He did not notice what became of his guide. When his mind
  • was clear again he was on his feet; eager hands were assisting him to
  • stand. He was in a big alcove, occupying the position that in his
  • previous experience had been devoted to the lower boxes. If this was
  • indeed a theatre.
  • A mighty tumult was in his ears, a thunderous roar, the shouting of a
  • countless multitude. "It is the Sleeper! The Sleeper is with us!"
  • "The Sleeper is with us! The Master--the Owner! The Master is with us.
  • He is safe."
  • Graham had a surging vision of a great hall crowded with people. He saw
  • no individuals, he was conscious of a froth of pink faces, of waving arms
  • and garments, he felt the occult influence of a vast crowd pouring over
  • him, buoying him up. There were balconies, galleries, great archways
  • giving remoter perspectives, and everywhere people, a vast arena of
  • people, densely packed and cheering. Across the nearer space lay the
  • collapsed cable like a huge snake. It had been cut by the men of the
  • flying machine at its upper end, and had crumpled down into the hall. Men
  • seemed to be hauling this out of the way. But the whole effect was vague,
  • the very buildings throbbed and leapt with the roar of the voices.
  • He stood unsteadily and looked at those about him. Someone supported him
  • by one arm. "Let me go into a little room," he said, weeping; "a little
  • room," and could say no more. A man in black stepped forward, took his
  • disengaged arm. He was aware of officious men opening a door before him.
  • Someone guided him to a seat. He staggered. He sat down heavily and
  • covered his face with his hands; he was trembling violently, his nervous
  • control was at an end. He was relieved of his cloak, he could not
  • remember how; his purple hose he saw were black with wet. People were
  • running about him, things were happening, but for some time he gave no
  • heed to them.
  • He had escaped. A myriad of cries told him that. He was safe. These were
  • the people who were on his side. For a space he sobbed for breath, and
  • then he sat still with his face covered. The air was full of the shouting
  • of innumerable men.
  • CHAPTER IX
  • THE PEOPLE MARCH
  • He became aware of someone urging a glass of clear fluid upon his
  • attention, looked up and discovered this was a dark young man in a yellow
  • garment. He took the dose forthwith, and in a moment he was glowing. A
  • tall man in a black robe stood by his shoulder, and pointed to the half
  • open door into the hall. This man was shouting close to his ear and yet
  • what was said was indistinct because of the tremendous uproar from the
  • great theatre. Behind the man was a girl in a silvery grey robe, whom
  • Graham, even in this confusion, perceived to be beautiful. Her dark eyes,
  • full of wonder and curiosity, were fixed on him, her lips trembled apart.
  • A partially opened door gave a glimpse of the crowded hall, and admitted
  • a vast uneven tumult, a hammering, clapping and shouting that died away
  • and began again, and rose to a thunderous pitch, and so continued
  • intermittently all the time that Graham remained in the little room. He
  • watched the lips of the man in black and gathered that he was making some
  • explanation.
  • He stared stupidly for some moments at these things and then stood up
  • abruptly; he grasped the arm of this shouting person.
  • "Tell me!" he cried. "Who am I? Who am I?"
  • The others came nearer to hear his words. "Who am I?" His eyes searched
  • their faces.
  • "They have told him nothing!" cried the girl.
  • "Tell me, tell me!" cried Graham.
  • "You are the Master of the Earth. You are owner of the world."
  • He did not believe he heard aright. He resisted the persuasion. He
  • pretended not to understand, not to hear. He lifted his voice again. "I
  • have been awake three days--a prisoner three days. I judge there is some
  • struggle between a number of people in this city--it is London?"
  • "Yes," said the younger man.
  • "And those who meet in the great hall with the white Atlas? How does it
  • concern me? In some way it has to do with me. _Why_, I don't know. Drugs?
  • It seems to me that while I have slept the world has gone mad. I have
  • gone mad.... Who are those Councillors under the Atlas? Why should they
  • try to drug me?"
  • "To keep you insensible," said the man in yellow. "To prevent your
  • interference."
  • "But _why_?"
  • "Because _you_ are the Atlas, Sire," said the man in yellow. "The world
  • is on your shoulders. They rule it in your name."
  • The sounds from the hall had died into a silence threaded by one
  • monotonous voice. Now suddenly, trampling on these last words, came a
  • deafening tumult, a roaring and thundering, cheer crowded on cheer,
  • voices hoarse and shrill, beating, overlapping, and while it lasted the
  • people in the little room could not hear each other shout.
  • Graham stood, his intelligence clinging helplessly to the thing he had
  • just heard. "The Council," he repeated blankly, and then snatched at a
  • name that had struck him. "But who is Ostrog?" he said.
  • "He is the organiser--the organiser of the revolt. Our Leader--in
  • your name."
  • "In my name?--And you? Why is he not here?"
  • "He--has deputed us. I am his brother--his half-brother, Lincoln. He
  • wants you to show yourself to these people and then come on to him. That
  • is why he has sent. He is at the wind-vane offices directing. The people
  • are marching."
  • "In your name," shouted the younger man. "They have ruled, crushed,
  • tyrannised. At last even--"
  • "In my name! My name! Master?"
  • The younger man suddenly became audible in a pause of the outer thunder,
  • indignant and vociferous, a high penetrating voice under his red
  • aquiline nose and bushy moustache. "No one expected you to wake. No one
  • expected you to wake. They were cunning. Damned tyrants! But they were
  • taken by surprise. They did not know whether to drug you, hypnotise you,
  • kill you."
  • Again the hall dominated everything.
  • "Ostrog is at the wind-vane offices ready--. Even now there is a rumour
  • of fighting beginning."
  • The man who had called himself Lincoln came close to him. "Ostrog has it
  • planned. Trust him. We have our organisations ready. We shall seize the
  • flying stages--. Even now he may be doing that. Then--"
  • "This public theatre," bawled the man in yellow, "is only a contingent.
  • We have five myriads of drilled men--"
  • "We have arms," cried Lincoln. "We have plans. A leader. Their police
  • have gone from the streets and are massed in the--" (inaudible). "It is
  • now or never. The Council is rocking--They cannot trust even their
  • drilled men--"
  • "Hear the people calling to you!"
  • Graham's mind was like a night of moon and swift clouds, now dark and
  • hopeless, now clear and ghastly. He was Master of the Earth, he was a man
  • sodden with thawing snow. Of all his fluctuating impressions the dominant
  • ones presented an antagonism; on the one hand was the White Council,
  • powerful, disciplined, few, the White Council from which he had just
  • escaped; and on the other, monstrous crowds, packed masses of
  • indistinguishable people clamouring his name, hailing him Master. The
  • other side had imprisoned him, debated his death. These shouting
  • thousands beyond the little doorway had rescued him. But why these things
  • should be so he could not understand.
  • The door opened, Lincoln's voice was swept away and drowned, and a rash
  • of people followed on the heels of the tumult. These intruders came
  • towards him and Lincoln gesticulating. The voices without explained their
  • soundless lips. "Show us the Sleeper, show us the Sleeper!" was the
  • burden of the uproar. Men were bawling for "Order! Silence!"
  • Graham glanced towards the open doorway, and saw a tall, oblong picture
  • of the hall beyond, a waving, incessant confusion of crowded, shouting
  • faces, men and women together, waving pale blue garments, extended hands.
  • Many were standing, one man in rags of dark brown, a gaunt figure, stood
  • on the seat and waved a black cloth. He met the wonder and expectation of
  • the girl's eyes. What did these people expect from him. He was dimly
  • aware that the tumult outside had changed its character, was in some way
  • beating, marching. His own mind, too, changed. For a space he did not
  • recognise the influence that was transforming him. But a moment that was
  • near to panic passed. He tried to make audible inquiries of what was
  • required of him.
  • Lincoln was shouting in his ear, but Graham was deafened to that. All the
  • others save the woman gesticulated towards the hall. He perceived what
  • had happened to the uproar. The whole mass of people was chanting
  • together. It was not simply a song, the voices were gathered together and
  • upborne by a torrent of instrumental music, music like the music of an
  • organ, a woven texture of sounds, full of trumpets, full of flaunting
  • banners, full of the march and pageantry of opening war. And the feet of
  • the people were beating time--tramp, tramp.
  • He was urged towards the door. He obeyed mechanically. The strength of
  • that chant took hold of him, stirred him, emboldened him. The hall opened
  • to him, a vast welter of fluttering colour swaying to the music.
  • "Wave your arm to them," said Lincoln. "Wave your arm to them."
  • "This," said a voice on the other side, "he must have this." Arms were
  • about his neck detaining him in the doorway, and a black
  • subtly-folding mantle hung from his shoulders. He threw his arm free
  • of this and followed Lincoln. He perceived the girl in grey close to
  • him, her face lit, her gesture onward. For the instant she became to
  • him, flushed and eager as she was, an embodiment of the song. He
  • emerged in the alcove again. Incontinently the mounting waves of the
  • song broke upon his appearing, and flashed up into a foam of shouting.
  • Guided by Lincoln's hand he marched obliquely across the centre of the
  • stage facing the people.
  • The hall was a vast and intricate space--galleries, balconies, broad
  • spaces of amphitheatral steps, and great archways. Far away, high up,
  • seemed the mouth of a huge passage full of struggling humanity. The whole
  • multitude was swaying in congested masses. Individual figures sprang out
  • of the tumult, impressed him momentarily, and lost definition again.
  • Close to the platform swayed a beautiful fair woman, carried by three
  • men, her hair across her face and brandishing a green staff. Next this
  • group an old careworn man in blue canvas maintained his place in the
  • crush with difficulty, and behind shouted a hairless face, a great cavity
  • of toothless mouth. A voice called that enigmatical word "Ostrog." All
  • his impressions were vague save the massive emotion of that trampling
  • song. The multitude were beating time with their feet--marking time,
  • tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. The green weapons waved, flashed and slanted.
  • Then he saw those nearest to him on a level space before the stage were
  • marching in front of him, passing towards a great archway, shouting "To
  • the Council!" Tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. He raised his arm, and the
  • roaring was redoubled. He remembered he had to shout "March!" His mouth
  • shaped inaudible heroic words. He waved his arm again and pointed to the
  • archway, shouting "Onward!" They were no longer marking time, they were
  • marching; tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. In that host were bearded men, old
  • men, youths, fluttering robed bare-armed women, girls. Men and women of
  • the new age! Rich robes, grey rags fluttered together in the whirl of
  • their movement amidst the dominant blue. A monstrous black banner jerked
  • its way to the right. He perceived a blue-clad negro, a shrivelled woman
  • in yellow, then a group of tall fair-haired, white-faced, blue-clad men
  • pushed theatrically past him. He noted two Chinamen. A tall, sallow,
  • dark-haired, shining-eyed youth, white clad from top to toe, clambered up
  • towards the platform shouting loyally, and sprang down again and receded,
  • looking backward. Heads, shoulders, hands clutching weapons, all were
  • swinging with those marching cadences.
  • Faces came out of the confusion to him as he stood there, eyes met his
  • and passed and vanished. Men gesticulated to him, shouted inaudible
  • personal things. Most of the faces were flushed, but many were ghastly
  • white. And disease was there, and many a hand that waved to him was gaunt
  • and lean. Men and women of the new age! Strange and incredible meeting!
  • As the broad stream passed before him to the right, tributary gangways
  • from the remote uplands of the hall thrust downward in an incessant
  • replacement of people; tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. The unison of the song
  • was enriched and complicated by the massive echoes of arches and
  • passages. Men and women mingled in the ranks; tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp.
  • The whole world seemed marching. Tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp; his brain
  • was tramping. The garments waved onward, the faces poured by more
  • abundantly.
  • Tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp; at Lincoln's pressure he turned towards the
  • archway, walking unconsciously in that rhythm, scarcely noticing his
  • movement for the melody and stir of it. The multitude, the gesture and
  • song, all moved in that direction, the flow of people smote downward
  • until the upturned faces were below the level of his feet. He was aware
  • of a path before him, of a suite about him, of guards and dignities, and
  • Lincoln on his right hand. Attendants intervened, and ever and again
  • blotted out the sight of the multitude to the left. Before him went the
  • backs of the guards in black--three and three and three. He was marched
  • along a little railed way, and crossed above the archway, with the
  • torrent dipping to flow beneath, and shouting up to him. He did not know
  • whither he went; he did not want to know. He glanced back across a
  • flaming spaciousness of hall. Tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp.
  • CHAPTER X
  • THE BATTLE OF THE DARKNESS
  • He was no longer in the hall. He was marching along a gallery overhanging
  • one of the great streets of the moving platforms that traversed the city.
  • Before him and behind him tramped his guards. The whole concave of the
  • moving ways below was a congested mass of people marching, tramping to
  • the left, shouting, waving hands and arms, pouring along a huge vista,
  • shouting as they came into view, shouting as they passed, shouting as
  • they receded, until the globes of electric light receding in perspective
  • dropped down it seemed and hid the swarming bare heads. Tramp, tramp,
  • tramp, tramp.
  • The song roared up to Graham now, no longer upborne by music, but coarse
  • and noisy, and the beating of the marching feet, tramp, tramp, tramp,
  • tramp, interwove with a thunderous irregularity of footsteps from the
  • undisciplined rabble that poured along the higher ways.
  • Abruptly he noted a contrast. The buildings on the opposite side of the
  • way seemed deserted, the cables and bridges that laced across the aisle
  • were empty and shadowy. It came into Graham's mind that these also should
  • have swarmed with people.
  • He felt a curious emotion--throbbing--very fast! He stopped again. The
  • guards before him marched on; those about him stopped as he did. He saw
  • anxiety and fear in their faces. The throbbing had something to do with
  • the lights. He too looked up.
  • At first it seemed to him a thing that affected the lights simply, an
  • isolated phenomenon, having no bearing on the things below. Each huge
  • globe of blinding whiteness was as it were clutched, compressed in a
  • systole that was followed by a transitory diastole, and again a systole
  • like a tightening grip, darkness, light, darkness, in rapid alternation.
  • Graham became aware that this strange behaviour of the lights had to do
  • with the people below. The appearance of the houses and ways, the
  • appearance of the packed masses changed, became a confusion of vivid
  • lights and leaping shadows. He saw a multitude of shadows had sprung into
  • aggressive existence, seemed rushing up, broadening, widening, growing
  • with steady swiftness--to leap suddenly back and return reinforced. The
  • song and the tramping had ceased. The unanimous march, he discovered, was
  • arrested, there were eddies, a flow sideways, shouts of "The lights!"
  • Voices were crying together one thing. "The lights!" cried these voices.
  • "The lights!" He looked down. In this dancing death of the lights the
  • area of the street had suddenly become a monstrous struggle. The huge
  • white globes became purple-white, purple with a reddish glow, flickered,
  • flickered faster and faster, fluttered between light and extinction,
  • ceased to flicker and became mere fading specks of glowing red in a vast
  • obscurity. In ten seconds the extinction was accomplished, and there was
  • only this roaring darkness, a black monstrosity that had suddenly
  • swallowed up those glittering myriads of men.
  • He felt invisible forms about him; his arms were gripped. Something
  • rapped sharply against his shin. A voice bawled in his ear, "It is all
  • right--all right."
  • Graham shook off the paralysis of his first astonishment. He struck his
  • forehead against Lincoln's and bawled, "What is this darkness?"
  • "The Council has cut the currents that light the city. We must
  • wait--stop. The people will go on. They will--"
  • His voice was drowned. Voices were shouting, "Save the Sleeper. Take care
  • of the Sleeper." A guard stumbled against Graham and hurt his hand by an
  • inadvertent blow of his weapon. A wild tumult tossed and whirled about
  • him, growing, as it seemed, louder, denser, more furious each moment.
  • Fragments of recognisable sounds drove towards him, were whirled away
  • from him as his mind reached out to grasp them. Voices seemed to be
  • shouting conflicting orders, other voices answered. There were suddenly a
  • succession of piercing screams close beneath them.
  • A voice bawled in his ear, "The red police," and receded forthwith beyond
  • his questions.
  • A crackling sound grew to distinctness, and therewith a leaping of faint
  • flashes along the edge of the further ways. By their light Graham saw the
  • heads and bodies of a number of men, armed with weapons like those of his
  • guards, leap into an instant's dim visibility. The whole area began to
  • crackle, to flash with little instantaneous streaks of light, and
  • abruptly the darkness rolled back like a curtain.
  • A glare of light dazzled his eyes, a vast seething expanse of struggling
  • men confused his mind. A shout, a burst of cheering, came across the
  • ways. He looked up to see the source of the light. A man hung far
  • overhead from the upper part of a cable, holding by a rope the blinding
  • star that had driven the darkness back.
  • Graham's eyes fell to the ways again. A wedge of red a little way
  • along the vista caught his eye. He saw it was a dense mass of red-clad
  • men jammed on the higher further way, their backs against the pitiless
  • cliff of building, and surrounded by a dense crowd of antagonists.
  • They were fighting. Weapons flashed and rose and fell, heads vanished
  • at the edge of the contest, and other heads replaced them, the little
  • flashes from the green weapons became little jets of smoky grey while
  • the light lasted.
  • Abruptly the flare was extinguished and the ways were an inky darkness
  • once more, a tumultuous mystery.
  • He felt something thrusting against him. He was being pushed along the
  • gallery. Someone was shouting--it might be at him. He was too confused
  • to hear. He was thrust against the wall, and a number of people
  • blundered past him. It seemed to him that his guards were struggling
  • with one another.
  • Suddenly the cable-hung star-holder appeared again, and the whole scene
  • was white and dazzling. The band of red-coats seemed broader and nearer;
  • its apex was half-way down the ways towards the central aisle. And
  • raising his eyes Graham saw that a number of these men had also appeared
  • now in the darkened lower galleries of the opposite building, and were
  • firing over the heads of their fellows below at the boiling confusion of
  • people on the lower ways. The meaning of these things dawned upon him.
  • The march of the people had come upon an ambush at the very outset.
  • Thrown into confusion by the extinction of the lights they were now being
  • attacked by the red police. Then he became aware that he was standing
  • alone, that his guards and Lincoln were along the gallery in the
  • direction along which he had come before the darkness fell. He saw they
  • were gesticulating to him wildly, running back towards him. A great
  • shouting came from across the ways. Then it seemed as though the whole
  • face of the darkened building opposite was lined and speckled with
  • red-clad men. And they were pointing over to him and shouting. "The
  • Sleeper! Save the Sleeper!" shouted a multitude of throats.
  • Something struck the wall above his head. He looked up at the impact and
  • saw a star-shaped splash of silvery metal. He saw Lincoln near him. Felt
  • his arm gripped. Then, pat, pat; he had been missed twice.
  • For a moment he did not understand this. The street was hidden,
  • everything was hidden, as he looked. The second flare had burned out.
  • Lincoln had gripped Graham by the arm, was lugging him along the gallery.
  • "Before the next light!" he cried. His haste was contagious. Graham's
  • instinct of self-preservation overcame the paralysis of his incredulous
  • astonishment. He became for a time the blind creature of the fear of
  • death. He ran, stumbling because of the uncertainty of the darkness,
  • blundered into his guards as they turned to run with him. Haste was his
  • one desire, to escape this perilous gallery upon which he was exposed. A
  • third glare came close on its predecessors. With it came a great shouting
  • across the ways, an answering tumult from the ways. The red-coats below,
  • he saw, had now almost gained the central passage. Their countless faces
  • turned towards him, and they shouted. The white façade opposite was
  • densely stippled with red. All these wonderful things concerned him,
  • turned upon him as a pivot. These were the guards of the Council
  • attempting to recapture him.
  • Lucky it was for him that these shots were the first fired in anger for
  • a hundred and fifty years. He heard bullets whacking over his head, felt
  • a splash of molten metal sting his ear, and perceived without looking
  • that the whole opposite façade, an unmasked ambuscade of red police, was
  • crowded and bawling and firing at him.
  • Down went one of his guards before him, and Graham, unable to stop, leapt
  • the writhing body.
  • In another second he had plunged, unhurt, into a black passage, and
  • incontinently someone, coming, it may be, in a transverse direction,
  • blundered violently into him. He was hurling down a staircase in absolute
  • darkness. He reeled, and was struck again, and came against a wall with
  • his hands. He was crushed by a weight of struggling bodies, whirled
  • round, and thrust to the right. A vast pressure pinned him. He could not
  • breathe, his ribs seemed cracking. He felt a momentary relaxation, and
  • then the whole mass of people moving together, bore him back towards the
  • great theatre from which he had so recently come. There were moments when
  • his feet did not touch the ground. Then he was staggering and shoving. He
  • heard shouts of "They are coming!" and a muffled cry close to him. His
  • foot blundered against something soft, he heard a hoarse scream under
  • foot. He heard shouts of "The Sleeper!" but he was too confused to speak.
  • He heard the green weapons crackling. For a space he lost his individual
  • will, became an atom in a panic, blind, unthinking, mechanical. He thrust
  • and pressed back and writhed in the pressure, kicked presently against a
  • step, and found himself ascending a slope. And abruptly the faces all
  • about him leapt out of the black, visible, ghastly-white and astonished,
  • terrified, perspiring, in a livid glare. One face, a young man's, was
  • very near to him, not twenty inches away. At the time it was but a
  • passing incident of no emotional value, but afterwards it came back to
  • him in his dreams. For this young man, wedged upright in the crowd for a
  • time, had been shot and was already dead.
  • A fourth white star must have been lit by the man on the cable. Its
  • light came glaring in through vast windows and arches and showed Graham
  • that he was now one of a dense mass of flying black figures pressed back
  • across the lower area of the great theatre. This time the picture was
  • livid and fragmentary, slashed and barred with black shadows. He saw
  • that quite near to him the red guards were fighting their way through
  • the people. He could not tell whether they saw him. He looked for
  • Lincoln and his guards. He saw Lincoln near the stage of the theatre
  • surrounded in a crowd of black-badged revolutionaries, lifted up and
  • staring to and fro as if seeking him. Graham perceived that he himself
  • was near the opposite edge of the crowd, that behind him, separated by a
  • barrier, sloped the now vacant seats of the theatre. A sudden idea came
  • to him, and he began fighting his way towards the barrier. As he reached
  • it the glare came to an end.
  • In a moment he had thrown off the great cloak that not only impeded his
  • movements but made him conspicuous, and had slipped it from his
  • shoulders. He heard someone trip in its folds. In another he was scaling
  • the barrier and had dropped into the blackness on the further side. Then
  • feeling his way he came to the lower end of an ascending gangway. In the
  • darkness the sound of firing ceased and the roar of feet and voices
  • lulled. Then suddenly he came to an unexpected step and tripped and fell.
  • As he did so pools and islands amidst the darkness about him leapt to
  • vivid light again, the uproar surged louder and the glare of the fifth
  • white star shone through the vast fenestrations of the theatre walls.
  • He rolled over among some seats, heard a shouting and the whirring rattle
  • of weapons, struggled up and was knocked back again, perceived that a
  • number of black-badged men were all about him firing at the reds below,
  • leaping from seat to seat, crouching among the seats to reload.
  • Instinctively he crouched amidst the seats, as stray shots ripped the
  • pneumatic cushions and cut bright slashes on their soft metal frames.
  • Instinctively he marked the direction of the gangways, the most plausible
  • way of escape for him so soon as the veil of darkness fell again.
  • A young man in faded blue garments came vaulting over the seats. "Hullo!"
  • he said, with his flying feet within six inches of the crouching
  • Sleeper's face.
  • He stared without any sign of recognition, turned to fire, fired, and
  • shouting, "To hell with the Council!" was about to fire again. Then it
  • seemed to Graham that the half of this man's neck had vanished. A drop of
  • moisture fell on Graham's cheek. The green weapon stopped half raised.
  • For a moment the man stood still with his face suddenly expressionless,
  • then he began to slant forward. His knees bent. Man and darkness fell
  • together. At the sound of his fall Graham rose up and ran for his life
  • until a step down to the gangway tripped him. He scrambled to his feet,
  • turned up the gangway and ran on.
  • When the sixth star glared he was already close to the yawning throat of
  • a passage. He ran on the swifter for the light, entered the passage and
  • turned a corner into absolute night again. He was knocked sideways,
  • rolled over, and recovered his feet. He found himself one of a crowd of
  • invisible fugitives pressing in one direction. His one thought now was
  • their thought also; to escape out of this fighting. He thrust and struck,
  • staggered, ran, was wedged tightly, lost ground and then was clear again.
  • For some minutes he was running through the darkness along a winding
  • passage, and then he crossed some wide and open space, passed down a long
  • incline, and came at last down a flight of steps to a level place. Many
  • people were shouting, "They are coming! The guards are coming. They are
  • firing. Get out of the fighting. The guards are firing. It will be safe
  • in Seventh Way. Along here to Seventh Way!" There were women and children
  • in the crowd as well as men.
  • The crowd converged on an archway, passed through a short throat and
  • emerged on a wider space again, lit dimly. The black figures about him
  • spread out and ran up what seemed in the twilight to be a gigantic series
  • of steps. He followed. The people dispersed to the right and left.... He
  • perceived that he was no longer in a crowd. He stopped near the highest
  • step. Before him, on that level, were groups of seats and a little kiosk.
  • He went up to this and, stopping in the shadow of its eaves, looked about
  • him panting.
  • Everything was vague and grey, but he recognised that these great steps
  • were a series of platforms of the "ways," now motionless again. The
  • platform slanted up on either side, and the tall buildings rose beyond,
  • vast dim ghosts, their inscriptions and advertisements indistinctly seen,
  • and up through the girders and cables was a faint interrupted ribbon of
  • pallid sky. A number of people hurried by. From their shouts and voices,
  • it seemed they were hurrying to join the fighting. Other less noisy
  • figures flitted timidly among the shadows.
  • From very far away down the street he could hear the sound of a struggle.
  • But it was evident to him that this was not the street into which the
  • theatre opened. That former fight, it seemed, had suddenly dropped out of
  • sound and hearing. And they were fighting for him!
  • For a space he was like a man who pauses in the reading of a vivid book,
  • and suddenly doubts what he has been taking unquestionably. At that time
  • he had little mind for details; the whole effect was a huge astonishment.
  • Oddly enough, while the flight from the Council prison, the great crowd
  • in the hall, and the attack of the red police upon the swarming people
  • were clearly present in his mind, it cost him an effort to piece in his
  • awakening and to revive the meditative interval of the Silent Rooms. At
  • first his memory leapt these things and took him back to the cascade at
  • Pentargen quivering in the wind, and all the sombre splendours of the
  • sunlit Cornish coast. The contrast touched everything with unreality. And
  • then the gap filled, and he began to comprehend his position.
  • It was no longer absolutely a riddle, as it had been in the Silent Rooms.
  • At least he had the strange, bare outline now. He was in some way the
  • owner of the world, and great political parties were fighting to possess
  • him. On the one hand was the Council, with its red police, set
  • resolutely, it seemed, on the usurpation of his property and perhaps his
  • murder; on the other, the revolution that had liberated him, with this
  • unseen "Ostrog" as its leader. And the whole of this gigantic city was
  • convulsed by their struggle. Frantic development of his world! "I do not
  • understand," he cried. "I do not understand!"
  • He had slipped out between the contending parties into this liberty of
  • the twilight. What would happen next? What was happening? He figured the
  • red-clad men as busily hunting him, driving the black-badged
  • revolutionists before them.
  • At any rate chance had given him a breathing space. He could lurk
  • unchallenged by the passers-by, and watch the course of things. His eye
  • followed up the intricate dim immensity of the twilight buildings, and it
  • came to him as a thing infinitely wonderful, that above there the sun was
  • rising, and the world was lit and glowing with the old familiar light of
  • day. In a little while he had recovered his breath. His clothing had
  • already dried upon him from the snow.
  • He wandered for miles along these twilight ways, speaking to no one,
  • accosted by no one--a dark figure among dark figures--the coveted man out
  • of the past, the inestimable unintentional owner of the world. Wherever
  • there were lights or dense crowds, or exceptional excitement, he was
  • afraid of recognition, and watched and turned back or went up and down by
  • the middle stairways, into some transverse system of ways at a lower or
  • higher level. And though he came on no more fighting, the whole city
  • stirred with battle. Once he had to run to avoid a marching multitude of
  • men that swept the street. Everyone abroad seemed involved. For the most
  • part they were men, and they carried what he judged were weapons. It
  • seemed as though the struggle was concentrated mainly in the quarter of
  • the city from which he came. Ever and again a distant roaring, the
  • remote suggestion of that conflict, reached his ears. Then his caution
  • and his curiosity struggled together. But his caution prevailed, and he
  • continued wandering away from the fighting--so far as he could judge. He
  • went unmolested, unsuspected through the dark. After a time he ceased to
  • hear even a remote echo of the battle, fewer and fewer people passed him,
  • until at last the streets became deserted. The frontages of the buildings
  • grew plain, and harsh; he seemed to have come to a district of vacant
  • warehouses. Solitude crept upon him--his pace slackened.
  • He became aware of a growing fatigue. At times he would turn aside and
  • sit down on one of the numerous benches of the upper ways. But a feverish
  • restlessness, the knowledge of his vital implication in this struggle,
  • would not let him rest in any place for long. Was the struggle on his
  • behalf alone?
  • And then in a desolate place came the shock of an earthquake--a roaring
  • and thundering--a mighty wind of cold air pouring through the city, the
  • smash of glass, the slip and thud of falling masonry--a series of
  • gigantic concussions. A mass of glass and ironwork fell from the remote
  • roofs into the middle gallery, not a hundred yards away from him, and in
  • the distance were shouts and running. He, too, was startled to an aimless
  • activity, and ran first one way and then as aimlessly back.
  • A man came running towards him. His self-control returned. "What have
  • they blown up?" asked the man breathlessly. "That was an explosion," and
  • before Graham could speak he had hurried on.
  • The great buildings rose dimly, veiled by a perplexing twilight, albeit
  • the rivulet of sky above was now bright with day. He noted many strange
  • features, understanding none at the time; he even spelt out many of the
  • inscriptions in Phonetic lettering. But what profit is it to decipher a
  • confusion of odd-looking letters resolving itself, after painful strain
  • of eye and mind, into "Here is Eadhamite," or, "Labour Bureau--Little
  • Side"? Grotesque thought, that all these cliff-like houses were his!
  • The perversity of his experience came to him vividly. In actual fact he
  • had made such a leap in time as romancers have imagined again and again.
  • And that fact realised, he had been prepared. His mind had, as it were,
  • seated itself for a spectacle. And no spectacle unfolded itself, but a
  • great vague danger, unsympathetic shadows and veils of darkness.
  • Somewhere through the labyrinthine obscurity his death sought him. Would
  • he, after all, be killed before he saw? It might be that even at the next
  • corner his destruction ambushed. A great desire to see, a great longing
  • to know, arose in him.
  • He became fearful of corners. It seemed to him that there was safety in
  • concealment. Where could he hide to be inconspicuous when the lights
  • returned? At last he sat down upon a seat in a recess on one of the
  • higher ways, conceiving he was alone there.
  • He squeezed his knuckles into his weary eyes. Suppose when he looked
  • again he found the dark trough of parallel ways and that intolerable
  • altitude of edifice gone. Suppose he were to discover the whole story of
  • these last few days, the awakening, the shouting multitudes, the darkness
  • and the fighting, a phantasmagoria, a new and more vivid sort of dream.
  • It must be a dream; it was so inconsecutive, so reasonless. Why were the
  • people fighting for him? Why should this saner world regard him as Owner
  • and Master?
  • So he thought, sitting blinded, and then he looked again, half hoping in
  • spite of his ears to see some familiar aspect of the life of the
  • nineteenth century, to see, perhaps, the little harbour of Boscastle
  • about him, the cliffs of Pentargen, or the bedroom of his home. But fact
  • takes no heed of human hopes. A squad of men with a black banner tramped
  • athwart the nearer shadows, intent on conflict, and beyond rose that
  • giddy wall of frontage, vast and dark, with the dim incomprehensible
  • lettering showing faintly on its face.
  • "It is no dream," he said, "no dream." And he bowed his face upon
  • his hands.
  • CHAPTER XI
  • THE OLD MAN WHO KNEW EVERYTHING
  • He was startled by a cough close at hand.
  • He turned sharply, and peering, saw a small, hunched-up figure sitting a
  • couple of yards off in the shadow of the enclosure.
  • "Have ye any news?" asked the high-pitched wheezy voice of a very old
  • man.
  • Graham hesitated. "None," he said.
  • "I stay here till the lights come again," said the old man. "These blue
  • scoundrels are everywhere--everywhere."
  • Graham's answer was inarticulate assent. He tried to see the old man but
  • the darkness hid his face. He wanted very much to respond, to talk, but
  • he did not know how to begin.
  • "Dark and damnable," said the old man suddenly. "Dark and damnable.
  • Turned out of my room among all these dangers."
  • "That's hard," ventured Graham. "That's hard on you."
  • "Darkness. An old man lost in the darkness. And all the world gone mad.
  • War and fighting. The police beaten and rogues abroad. Why don't they
  • bring some negroes to protect us? ... No more dark passages for me. I
  • fell over a dead man."
  • "You're safer with company," said the old man, "if it's company of
  • the right sort," and peered frankly. He rose suddenly and came
  • towards Graham.
  • Apparently the scrutiny was satisfactory. The old man sat down as if
  • relieved to be no longer alone. "Eh!" he said, "but this is a terrible
  • time! War and fighting, and the dead lying there--men, strong men, dying
  • in the dark. Sons! I have three sons. God knows where they are to-night."
  • The voice ceased. Then repeated quavering: "God knows where they are
  • to-night."
  • Graham stood revolving a question that should not betray his ignorance.
  • Again the old man's voice ended the pause.
  • "This Ostrog will win," he said. "He will win. And what the world will
  • be like under him no one can tell. My sons are under the wind-vanes,
  • all three. One of my daughters-in-law was his mistress for a while.
  • His mistress! We're not common people. Though they've sent me to
  • wander to-night and take my chance.... I knew what was going on.
  • Before most people. But this darkness! And to fall over a dead body
  • suddenly in the dark!"
  • His wheezy breathing could be heard.
  • "Ostrog!" said Graham.
  • "The greatest Boss the world has ever seen," said the voice.
  • Graham ransacked his mind. "The Council has few friends among the
  • people," he hazarded.
  • "Few friends. And poor ones at that. They've had their time. Eh! They
  • should have kept to the clever ones. But twice they held election. And
  • Ostrog--. And now it has burst out and nothing can stay it, nothing can
  • stay it. Twice they rejected Ostrog--Ostrog the Boss. I heard of his
  • rages at the time--he was terrible. Heaven save them! For nothing on
  • earth can now he has raised the Labour Companies upon them. No one else
  • would have dared. All the blue canvas armed and marching! He will go
  • through with it. He will go through."
  • He was silent for a little while. "This Sleeper," he said, and stopped.
  • "Yes," said Graham. "Well?"
  • The senile voice sank to a confidential whisper, the dim, pale face came
  • close. "The real Sleeper--"
  • "Yes," said Graham.
  • "Died years ago."
  • "What?" said Graham, sharply.
  • "Years ago. Died. Years ago."
  • "You don't say so!" said Graham.
  • "I do. I do say so. He died. This Sleeper who's woke up--they changed in
  • the night. A poor, drugged insensible creature. But I mustn't tell all I
  • know. I mustn't tell all I know."
  • For a little while he muttered inaudibly. His secret was too much for
  • him. "I don't know the ones that put him to sleep--that was before my
  • time--but I know the man who injected the stimulants and woke him again.
  • It was ten to one--wake or kill. Wake or kill. Ostrog's way."
  • Graham was so astonished at these things that he had to interrupt, to
  • make the old man repeat his words, to re-question vaguely, before he was
  • sure of the meaning and folly of what he heard. And his awakening had
  • not been natural! Was that an old man's senile superstition, too, or had
  • it any truth in it? Feeling in the dark corners of his memory, he
  • presently came on something that might conceivably be an impression of
  • some such stimulating effect. It dawned upon him that he had happened
  • upon a lucky encounter, that at last he might learn something of the new
  • age. The old man wheezed awhile and spat, and then the piping,
  • reminiscent voice resumed:
  • "The first time they rejected him. I've followed it all."
  • "Rejected whom?" said Graham. "The Sleeper?"
  • "Sleeper? _No_. Ostrog. He was terrible--terrible! And he was promised
  • then, promised certainly the next time. Fools they were--not to be more
  • afraid of him. Now all the city's his millstone, and such as we dust
  • ground upon it. Dust ground upon it. Until he set to work--the workers
  • cut each other's throats, and murdered a Chinaman or a Labour policeman
  • at times, and left the rest of us in peace. Dead bodies! Robbing!
  • Darkness! Such a thing hasn't been this gross of years. Eh!--but 'tis ill
  • on small folks when the great fall out! It's ill."
  • "Did you say--there had not been--what?--for a gross of years?"
  • "Eh?" said the old man.
  • The old man said something about clipping his words, and made him repeat
  • this a third time. "Fighting and slaying, and weapons in hand, and fools
  • bawling freedom and the like," said the old man. "Not in all my life has
  • there been that. These are like the old days--for sure--when the Paris
  • people broke out--three gross of years ago. That's what I mean hasn't
  • been. But it's the world's way. It had to come back. I know. I know. This
  • five years Ostrog has been working, and there has been trouble and
  • trouble, and hunger and threats and high talk and arms. Blue canvas and
  • murmurs. No one safe. Everything sliding and slipping. And now here we
  • are! Revolt and fighting, and the Council come to its end."
  • "You are rather well-informed on these things," said Graham.
  • "I know what I hear. It isn't all Babble Machine with me."
  • "No," said Graham, wondering what Babble Machine might be. "And you are
  • certain this Ostrog--you are certain Ostrog organised this rebellion and
  • arranged for the waking of the Sleeper? Just to assert himself--because
  • he was not elected to the Council?"
  • "Everyone knows that, I should think," said the old man. "Except--just
  • fools. He meant to be master somehow. In the Council or not. Everyone who
  • knows anything knows that. And here we are with dead bodies lying in the
  • dark! Why, where have you been if you haven't heard all about the trouble
  • between Ostrog and the Verneys? And what do you think the troubles are
  • about? The Sleeper? Eh? You think the Sleeper's real and woke of his own
  • accord--eh?"
  • "I'm a dull man, older than I look, and forgetful," said Graham. "Lots of
  • things that have happened--especially of late years--. If I was the
  • Sleeper, to tell you the truth, I couldn't know less about them."
  • "Eh!" said the voice. "Old, are you? You don't sound so very old! But
  • it's not everyone keeps his memory to my time of life--truly. But these
  • notorious things! But you're not so old as me--not nearly so old as me.
  • Well! I ought not to judge other men by myself, perhaps. I'm young--for
  • so old a man. Maybe you're old for so young."
  • "That's it," said Graham. "And I've a queer history. I know very little.
  • And history! Practically I know no history. The Sleeper and Julius
  • Caesar are all the same to me. It's interesting to hear you talk of
  • these things."
  • "I know a few things," said the old man. "I know a thing or two.
  • But--. Hark!"
  • The two men became silent, listening. There was a heavy thud, a
  • concussion that made their seat shiver. The passers-by stopped, shouted
  • to one another. The old man was full of questions; he shouted to a man
  • who passed near. Graham, emboldened by his example, got up and accosted
  • others. None knew what had happened.
  • He returned to the seat and found the old man muttering vague
  • interrogations in an undertone. For a while they said nothing to
  • one another.
  • The sense of this gigantic struggle, so near and yet so remote, oppressed
  • Graham's imagination. Was this old man right, was the report of the
  • people right, and were the revolutionaries winning? Or were they all in
  • error, and were the red guards driving all before them? At any time the
  • flood of warfare might pour into this silent quarter of the city and
  • seize upon him again. It behoved him to learn all he could while there
  • was time. He turned suddenly to the old man with a question and left it
  • unsaid. But his motion moved the old man to speech again.
  • "Eh! but how things work together!" said the old man. "This Sleeper that
  • all the fools put their trust in! I've the whole history of it--I was
  • always a good one for histories. When I was a boy--I'm that old--I used
  • to read printed books. You'd hardly think it. Likely you've seen
  • none--they rot and dust so--and the Sanitary Company burns them to make
  • ashlarite. But they were convenient in their dirty way. One learnt a
  • lot. These new-fangled Babble Machines--they don't seem new-fangled to
  • you, eh?--they're easy to hear, easy to forget. But I've traced all the
  • Sleeper business from the first."
  • "You will scarcely believe it," said Graham slowly, "I'm so
  • ignorant--I've been so preoccupied in my own little affairs, my
  • circumstances have been so odd--I know nothing of this Sleeper's history.
  • Who was he?"
  • "Eh!" said the old man. "I know, I know. He was a poor nobody, and set
  • on a playful woman, poor soul! And he fell into a trance. There's the
  • old things they had, those brown things--silver photographs--still
  • showing him as he lay, a gross and a half years ago--a gross and a half
  • of years."
  • "Set on a playful woman, poor soul," said Graham softly to himself, and
  • then aloud, "Yes--well go on."
  • "You must know he had a cousin named Warming, a solitary man without
  • children, who made a big fortune speculating in roads--the first
  • Eadhamite roads. But surely you've heard? No? Why? He bought all the
  • patent rights and made a big company. In those days there were grosses of
  • grosses of separate businesses and business companies. Grosses of
  • grosses! His roads killed the railroads--the old things--in two dozen
  • years; he bought up and Eadhamited the tracks. And because he didn't want
  • to break up his great property or let in shareholders, he left it all to
  • the Sleeper, and put it under a Board of Trustees that he had picked and
  • trained. He knew then the Sleeper wouldn't wake, that he would go on
  • sleeping, sleeping till he died. He knew that quite well! And plump! a
  • man in the United States, who had lost two sons in a boat accident,
  • followed that up with another great bequest. His trustees found
  • themselves with a dozen myriads of lions'-worth or more of property at
  • the very beginning."
  • "What was his name?"
  • "Graham."
  • "No--I mean--that American's."
  • "Isbister."
  • "Isbister!" cried Graham. "Why, I don't even know the name."
  • "Of course not," said the old man. "Of course not. People don't learn
  • much in the schools nowadays. But I know all about him. He was a rich
  • American who went from England, and he left the Sleeper even more than
  • Warming. How he made it? That I don't know. Something about pictures by
  • machinery. But he made it and left it, and so the Council had its start.
  • It was just a council of trustees at first."
  • "And how did it grow?"
  • "Eh!--but you're not up to things. Money attracts money--and twelve
  • brains are better than one. They played it cleverly. They worked politics
  • with money, and kept on adding to the money by working currency and
  • tariffs. They grew--they grew. And for years the twelve trustees hid the
  • growing of the Sleeper's estate under double names and company titles and
  • all that. The Council spread by title deed, mortgage, share, every
  • political party, every newspaper they bought. If you listen to the old
  • stories you will see the Council growing and growing. Billions and
  • billions of lions at last--the Sleeper's estate. And all growing out of a
  • whim--out of this Warming's will, and an accident to Isbister's sons.
  • "Men are strange," said the old man. "The strange thing to me is how the
  • Council worked together so long. As many as twelve. But they worked in
  • cliques from the first. And they've slipped back. In my young days
  • speaking of the Council was like an ignorant man speaking of God. We
  • didn't think they could do wrong. We didn't know of their women and all
  • that! Or else I've got wiser.
  • "Men are strange," said the old man. "Here are you, young and
  • ignorant, and me--sevendy years old, and I might reasonably before
  • getting--explaining it all to you short and clear.
  • "Sevendy," he said, "sevendy, and I hear and see--hear better than I
  • see. And reason clearly, and keep myself up to all the happenings of
  • things. Sevendy!
  • "Life is strange. I was twaindy before Ostrog was a baby. I remember him
  • long before he'd pushed his way to the head of the Wind Vanes Control.
  • I've seen many changes. Eh! I've worn the blue. And at last I've come to
  • see this crush and darkness and tumult and dead men carried by in heaps
  • on the ways. And all his doing! All his doing!"
  • His voice died away in scarcely articulate praises of Ostrog.
  • Graham thought. "Let me see," he said, "if I have it right."
  • He extended a hand and ticked off points upon his fingers. "The Sleeper
  • has been asleep--"
  • "Changed," said the old man.
  • "Perhaps. And meanwhile the Sleeper's property grew in the hands of
  • Twelve Trustees, until it swallowed up nearly all the great ownership of
  • the world. The Twelve Trustees--by virtue of this property have become
  • masters of the world. Because they are the paying power--just as the old
  • English Parliament used to be--"
  • "Eh!" said the old man. "That's so--that's a good comparison.
  • You're not so--"
  • "And now this Ostrog--has suddenly revolutionised the world by waking the
  • Sleeper--whom no one but the superstitious, common people had ever dreamt
  • would wake again--raising the Sleeper to claim his property from the
  • Council, after all these years."
  • The old man endorsed this statement with a cough. "It's strange," he
  • said, "to meet a man who learns these things for the first time
  • to-night."
  • "Aye," said Graham, "it's strange."
  • "Have you been in a Pleasure City?" said the old man. "All my life I've
  • longed--" He laughed. "Even now," he said, "I could enjoy a little fun.
  • Enjoy seeing things, anyhow." He mumbled a sentence Graham did not
  • understand.
  • "The Sleeper--when did he awake?" said Graham suddenly.
  • "Three days ago."
  • "Where is he?"
  • "Ostrog has him. He escaped from the Council not four hours ago. My
  • dear sir, where were you at the time? He was in the hall of the
  • markets--where the fighting has been. All the city was screaming about
  • it. All the Babble Machines. Everywhere it was shouted. Even the fools
  • who speak for the Council were admitting it. Everyone was rushing off to
  • see him--everyone was getting arms. Were you drunk or asleep? And even
  • then! But you're joking! Surely you're pretending. It was to stop the
  • shouting of the Babble Machines and prevent the people gathering that
  • they turned off the electricity--and put this damned darkness upon us.
  • Do you mean to say--?"
  • "I had heard the Sleeper was rescued," said Graham. "But--to come back a
  • minute. Are you sure Ostrog has him?"
  • "He won't let him go," said the old man.
  • "And the Sleeper. Are you sure he is not genuine? I have never heard--"
  • "So all the fools think. So they think. As if there wasn't a thousand
  • things that were never heard. I know Ostrog too well for that. Did I tell
  • you? In a way I'm a sort of relation of Ostrog's. A sort of relation.
  • Through my daughter-in-law."
  • "I suppose--"
  • "Well?"
  • "I suppose there's no chance of this Sleeper asserting himself. I suppose
  • he's certain to be a puppet--in Ostrog's hands or the Council's, as soon
  • as the struggle is over."
  • "In Ostrog's hands--certainly. Why shouldn't he be a puppet? Look at his
  • position. Everything done for him, every pleasure possible. Why should he
  • want to assert himself?"
  • "What are these Pleasure Cities?" said Graham, abruptly.
  • The old man made him repeat the question. When at last he was assured of
  • Graham's words, he nudged him violently. "That's _too_ much," said he.
  • "You're poking fun at an old man. I've been suspecting you know more than
  • you pretend."
  • "Perhaps I do," said Graham. "But no! why should I go on acting? No, I do
  • not know what a Pleasure City is."
  • The old man laughed in an intimate way.
  • "What is more, I do not know how to read your letters, I do not know
  • what money you use, I do not know what foreign countries there are. I do
  • not know where I am. I cannot count. I do not know where to get food, nor
  • drink, nor shelter."
  • "Come, come," said the old man, "if you had a glass of drink now, would
  • you put it in your ear or your eye?"
  • "I want you to tell me all these things."
  • "He, he! Well, gentlemen who dress in silk must have their fun." A
  • withered hand caressed Graham's arm for a moment. "Silk. Well, well! But,
  • all the same, I wish I was the man who was put up as the Sleeper. He'll
  • have a fine time of it. All the pomp and pleasure. He's a queer looking
  • face. When they used to let anyone go to see him, I've got tickets and
  • been. The image of the real one, as the photographs show him, this
  • substitute used to be. Yellow. But he'll get fed up. It's a queer world.
  • Think of the luck of it. The luck of it. I expect he'll be sent to Capri.
  • It's the best fun for a greener."
  • His cough overtook him again. Then he began mumbling enviously of
  • pleasures and strange delights. "The luck of it, the luck of it! All my
  • life I've been in London, hoping to get my chance."
  • "But you don't know that the Sleeper died," said Graham, suddenly.
  • The old man made him repeat his words.
  • "Men don't live beyond ten dozen. It's not in the order of things," said
  • the old man. "I'm not a fool. Fools may believe it, but not me."
  • Graham became angry with the old man's assurance. "Whether you are a fool
  • or not," he said, "it happens you are wrong about the Sleeper."
  • "Eh?"
  • "You are wrong about the Sleeper. I haven't told you before, but I will
  • tell you now. You are wrong about the Sleeper."
  • "How do you know? I thought you didn't know anything--not even about
  • Pleasure Cities."
  • Graham paused.
  • "You don't know," said the old man. "How are you to know? It's very
  • few men--"
  • "I _am_ the Sleeper."
  • He had to repeat it.
  • There was a brief pause. "There's a silly thing to say, sir, if you'll
  • excuse me. It might get you into trouble in a time like this," said
  • the old man.
  • Graham, slightly dashed, repeated his assertion.
  • "I was saying I was the Sleeper. That years and years ago I did, indeed,
  • fall asleep, in a little stone-built village, in the days when there were
  • hedgerows, and villages, and inns, and all the countryside cut up into
  • little pieces, little fields. Have you never heard of those days? And it
  • is I--I who speak to you--who awakened again these four days since."
  • "Four days since!--the Sleeper! But they've _got_ the Sleeper. They have
  • him and they won't let him go. Nonsense! You've been talking sensibly
  • enough up to now. I can see it as though I was there. There will be
  • Lincoln like a keeper just behind him; they won't let him go about alone.
  • Trust them. You're a queer fellow. One of these fun pokers. I see now why
  • you have been clipping your words so oddly, but--"
  • He stopped abruptly, and Graham could see his gesture.
  • "As if Ostrog would let the Sleeper run about alone! No, you're telling
  • that to the wrong man altogether. Eh! as if I should believe. What's
  • your game? And besides, we've been talking of the Sleeper."
  • Graham stood up. "Listen," he said. "I am the Sleeper."
  • "You're an odd man," said the old man, "to sit here in the dark, talking
  • clipped, and telling a lie of that sort. But--"
  • Graham's exasperation fell to laughter. "It is preposterous," he cried.
  • "Preposterous. The dream must end. It gets wilder and wilder. Here am
  • I--in this damned twilight--I never knew a dream in twilight before--an
  • anachronism by two hundred years and trying to persuade an old fool that
  • I am myself, and meanwhile--Ugh!"
  • He moved in gusty irritation and went striding. In a moment the old man
  • was pursuing him. "Eh! but don't go!" cried the old man. "I'm an old
  • fool, I know. Don't go. Don't leave me in all this darkness."
  • Graham hesitated, stopped. Suddenly the folly of telling his secret
  • flashed into his mind.
  • "I didn't mean to offend you--disbelieving you," said the old man coming
  • near. "It's no manner of harm. Call yourself the Sleeper if it pleases
  • you. 'Tis a foolish trick--"
  • Graham hesitated, turned abruptly and went on his way.
  • For a time he heard the old man's hobbling pursuit and his wheezy
  • cries receding. But at last the darkness swallowed him, and Graham saw
  • him no more.
  • CHAPTER XII
  • OSTROG
  • Graham could now take a clearer view of his position. For a long time yet
  • he wandered, but after the talk of the old man his discovery of this
  • Ostrog was clear in his mind as the final inevitable decision. One thing
  • was evident, those who were at the headquarters of the revolt had
  • succeeded very admirably in suppressing the fact of his disappearance.
  • But every moment he expected to hear the report of his death or of his
  • recapture by the Council.
  • Presently a man stopped before him. "Have you heard?" he said.
  • "No!" said Graham, starting.
  • "Near a dozand," said the man, "a dozand men!" and hurried on.
  • A number of men and a girl passed in the darkness, gesticulating and
  • shouting: "Capitulated! Given up!" "A dozand of men." "Two dozand of
  • men." "Ostrog, Hurrah! Ostrog, Hurrah!" These cries receded, became
  • indistinct.
  • Other shouting men followed. For a time his attention was absorbed in the
  • fragments of speech he heard. He had a doubt whether all were speaking
  • English. Scraps floated to him, scraps like Pigeon English, like "nigger"
  • dialect, blurred and mangled distortions. He dared accost no one with
  • questions. The impression the people gave him jarred altogether with his
  • preconceptions of the struggle and confirmed the old man's faith in
  • Ostrog. It was only slowly he could bring himself to believe that all
  • these people were rejoicing at the defeat of the Council, that the
  • Council which had pursued him with such power and vigour was after all
  • the weaker of the two sides in conflict. And if that was so, how did it
  • affect him? Several times he hesitated on the verge of fundamental
  • questions. Once he turned and walked for a long way after a little man of
  • rotund inviting outline, but he was unable to master confidence to
  • address him.
  • It was only slowly that it came to him that he might ask for the
  • "wind-vane offices" whatever the "wind-vane offices" might be. His first
  • enquiry simply resulted in a direction to go on towards Westminster. His
  • second led to the discovery of a short cut in which he was speedily lost.
  • He was told to leave the ways to which he had hitherto confined
  • himself--knowing no other means of transit--and to plunge down one of the
  • middle staircases into the blackness of a cross-way. Thereupon came some
  • trivial adventures; chief of these an ambiguous encounter with a
  • gruff-voiced invisible creature speaking in a strange dialect that seemed
  • at first a strange tongue, a thick flow of speech with the drifting
  • corpses of English Words therein, the dialect of the latter-day vile.
  • Then another voice drew near, a girl's voice singing, "tralala tralala."
  • She spoke to Graham, her English touched with something of the same
  • quality. She professed to have lost her sister, she blundered needlessly
  • into him he thought, caught hold of him and laughed. But a word of vague
  • remonstrance sent her into the unseen again.
  • The sounds about him increased. Stumbling people passed him, speaking
  • excitedly. "They have surrendered!" "The Council! Surely not the
  • Council!" "They are saying so in the Ways." The passage seemed wider.
  • Suddenly the wall fell away. He was in a great space and people were
  • stirring remotely. He inquired his way of an indistinct figure. "Strike
  • straight across," said a woman's voice. He left his guiding wall, and in
  • a moment had stumbled against a little table on which were utensils of
  • glass. Graham's eyes, now attuned to darkness, made out a long vista with
  • tables on either side. He went down this. At one or two of the tables he
  • heard a clang of glass and a sound of eating. There were people then cool
  • enough to dine, or daring enough to steal a meal in spite of social
  • convulsion and darkness. Far off and high up he presently saw a pallid
  • light of a semi-circular shape. As he approached this, a black edge came
  • up and hid it. He stumbled at steps and found himself in a gallery. He
  • heard a sobbing, and found two scared little girls crouched by a railing.
  • These children became silent at the near sound of feet. He tried to
  • console them, but they were very still until he left them. Then as he
  • receded he could hear them sobbing again.
  • Presently he found himself at the foot of a staircase and near a wide
  • opening. He saw a dim twilight above this and ascended out of the
  • blackness into a street of moving ways again. Along this a disorderly
  • swarm of people marched shouting. They were singing snatches of the song
  • of the revolt, most of them out of tune. Here and there torches flared
  • creating brief hysterical shadows. He asked his way and was twice puzzled
  • by that same thick dialect. His third attempt won an answer he could
  • understand. He was two miles from the wind-vane offices in Westminster,
  • but the way was easy to follow.
  • When at last he did approach the district of the wind-vane offices it
  • seemed to him, from the cheering processions that came marching along the
  • Ways, from the tumult of rejoicing, and finally from the restoration of
  • the lighting of the city, that the overthrow of the Council must already
  • be accomplished. And still no news of his absence came to his ears.
  • The re-illumination of the city came with startling abruptness. Suddenly
  • he stood blinking, all about him men halted dazzled, and the world was
  • incandescent. The light found him already upon the outskirts of the
  • excited crowds that choked the ways near the wind-vane offices, and the
  • sense of visibility and exposure that came with it turned his colourless
  • intention of joining Ostrog to a keen anxiety.
  • For a time he was jostled, obstructed, and endangered by men hoarse and
  • weary with cheering his name, some of them bandaged and bloody in his
  • cause. The frontage of the wind-vane offices was illuminated by some
  • moving picture, but what it was he could not see, because in spite of his
  • strenuous attempts the density of the crowd prevented his approaching it.
  • From the fragments of speech he caught, he judged it conveyed news of the
  • fighting about the Council House. Ignorance and indecision made him slow
  • and ineffective in his movements. For a time he could not conceive how he
  • was to get within the unbroken façade of this place. He made his way
  • slowly into the midst of this mass of people, until he realised that the
  • descending staircase of the central way led to the interior of the
  • buildings. This gave him a goal, but the crowding in the central path
  • was so dense that it was long before he could reach it. And even then he
  • encountered intricate obstruction, and had an hour of vivid argument
  • first in this guard room and then in that before he could get a note
  • taken to the one man of all men who was most eager to see him. His story
  • was laughed to scorn at one place, and wiser for that, when at last he
  • reached a second stairway he professed simply to have news of
  • extraordinary importance for Ostrog. What it was he would not say. They
  • sent his note reluctantly. For a long time he waited in a little room at
  • the foot of the lift shaft, and thither at last came Lincoln, eager,
  • apologetic, astonished. He stopped in the doorway scrutinising Graham,
  • then rushed forward effusively.
  • "Yes," he cried. "It is you. And you are not dead!"
  • Graham made a brief explanation.
  • "My brother is waiting," explained Lincoln. "He is alone in the wind-vane
  • offices. We feared you had been killed in the theatre. He doubted--and
  • things are very urgent still in spite of what we are telling them
  • _there_--or he would have come to you."
  • They ascended a lift, passed along a narrow passage, crossed a great
  • hall, empty save for two hurrying messengers, and entered a comparatively
  • little room, whose only furniture was a long settee and a large oval disc
  • of cloudy, shifting grey, hung by cables from the wall. There Lincoln
  • left Graham for a space, and he remained alone without understanding the
  • smoky shapes that drove slowly across this disc.
  • His attention was arrested by a sound that began abruptly. It was
  • cheering, the frantic cheering of a vast but very remote crowd, a roaring
  • exultation. This ended as sharply as it had begun, like a sound heard
  • between the opening and shutting of a door. In the outer room was a noise
  • of hurrying steps and a melodious clinking as if a loose chain was
  • running over the teeth of a wheel.
  • Then he heard the voice of a woman, the rustle of unseen garments. "It is
  • Ostrog!" he heard her say. A little bell rang fitfully, and then
  • everything was still again.
  • Presently came voices, footsteps and movement without. The footsteps of
  • some one person detached itself from the other sounds, and drew near,
  • firm, evenly measured steps. The curtain lifted slowly. A tall,
  • white-haired man, clad in garments of cream-coloured silk, appeared,
  • regarding Graham from under his raised arm.
  • For a moment the white form remained holding the curtain, then dropped it
  • and stood before it. Graham's first impression was of a very broad
  • forehead, very pale blue eyes deep sunken under white brows, an aquiline
  • nose, and a heavily-lined resolute mouth. The folds of flesh over the
  • eyes, the drooping of the corners of the mouth contradicted the upright
  • bearing, and said the man was old. Graham rose to his feet instinctively,
  • and for a moment the two men stood in silence, regarding each other.
  • "You are Ostrog?" said Graham.
  • "I am Ostrog."
  • "The Boss?"
  • "So I am called."
  • Graham felt the inconvenience of the silence. "I have to thank you
  • chiefly, I understand, for my safety," he said presently.
  • "We were afraid you were killed," said Ostrog. "Or sent to sleep
  • again--for ever. We have been doing everything to keep our secret--the
  • secret of your disappearance. Where have you been? How did you get here?"
  • Graham told him briefly.
  • Ostrog listened in silence.
  • He smiled faintly. "Do you know what I was doing when they came to tell
  • me you had come?"
  • "How can I guess?"
  • "Preparing your double."
  • "My double?"
  • "A man as like you as we could find. We were going to hypnotise him, to
  • save him the difficulty of acting. It was imperative. The whole of this
  • revolt depends on the idea that you are awake, alive, and with us. Even
  • now a great multitude of people has gathered in the theatre clamouring to
  • see you. They do not trust.... You know, of course--something of your
  • position?"
  • "Very little," said Graham.
  • "It is like this." Ostrog walked a pace or two into the room and turned.
  • "You are absolute owner," he said, "of the world. You are King of the
  • Earth. Your powers are limited in many intricate ways, but you are the
  • figure-head, the popular symbol of government. This White Council, the
  • Council of Trustees as it is called--"
  • "I have heard the vague outline of these things."
  • "I wondered."
  • "I came upon a garrulous old man."
  • "I see.... Our masses--the word comes from your days--you know, of
  • course, that we still have masses--regard you as our actual ruler. Just
  • as a great number of people in your days regarded the Crown as the
  • ruler. They are discontented--the masses all over the earth--with the
  • rule of your Trustees. For the most part it is the old discontent, the
  • old quarrel of the common man with his commonness--the misery of work and
  • discipline and unfitness. But your Trustees have ruled ill. In certain
  • matters, in the administration of the Labour Companies, for example, they
  • have been unwise. They have given endless opportunities. Already we of
  • the popular party were agitating for reforms--when your waking came.
  • Came! If it had been contrived it could not have come more
  • opportunely." He smiled. "The public mind, making no allowance for
  • your years of quiescence, had already hit on the thought of waking you
  • and appealing to you, and--Flash!"
  • He indicated the outbreak by a gesture, and Graham moved his head to show
  • that he understood.
  • "The Council muddled--quarrelled. They always do. They could not decide
  • what to do with you. You know how they imprisoned you?"
  • "I see. I see. And now--we win?"
  • "We win. Indeed we win. To-night, in five swift hours. Suddenly we struck
  • everywhere. The wind-vane people, the Labour Company and its millions,
  • burst the bonds. We got the pull of the aeroplanes."
  • "Yes," said Graham.
  • "That was, of course, essential. Or they could have got away. All the
  • city rose, every third man almost was in it! All the blue, all the public
  • services, save only just a few aeronauts and about half the red police.
  • You were rescued, and their own police of the ways--not half of them
  • could be massed at the Council House--have been broken up, disarmed or
  • killed. All London is ours--now. Only the Council House remains.
  • "Half of those who remain to them of the red police were lost in that
  • foolish attempt to recapture you. They lost their heads when they lost
  • you. They flung all they had at the theatre. We cut them off from the
  • Council House there. Truly to-night has been a night of victory.
  • Everywhere your star has blazed. A day ago--the White Council ruled as it
  • has ruled for a gross of years, for a century and a half of years, and
  • then, with only a little whispering, a covert arming here and there,
  • suddenly--So!"
  • "I am very ignorant," said Graham. "I suppose--I do not clearly
  • understand the conditions of this fighting. If you could explain. Where
  • is the Council? Where is the fight?"
  • Ostrog stepped across the room, something clicked, and suddenly, save for
  • an oval glow, they were in darkness. For a moment Graham was puzzled.
  • Then he saw that the cloudy grey disc had taken depth and colour, had
  • assumed the appearance of an oval window looking out upon a strange
  • unfamiliar scene.
  • At the first glance he was unable to guess what this scene might be. It
  • was a daylight scene, the daylight of a wintry day, grey and clear.
  • Across the picture, and halfway as it seemed between him and the remoter
  • view, a stout cable of twisted white wire stretched vertically. Then he
  • perceived that the rows of great wind-wheels he saw, the wide intervals,
  • the occasional gulfs of darkness, were akin to those through which he had
  • fled from the Council House. He distinguished an orderly file of red
  • figures marching across an open space between files of men in black, and
  • realised before Ostrog spoke that he was looking down on the upper
  • surface of latter-day London. The overnight snows had gone. He judged
  • that this mirror was some modern replacement of the camera obscura, but
  • that matter was not explained to him. He saw that though the file of red
  • figures was trotting from left to right, yet they were passing out of the
  • picture to the left. He wondered momentarily, and then saw that the
  • picture was passing slowly, panorama fashion, across the oval.
  • "In a moment you will see the fighting," said Ostrog at his elbow. "Those
  • fellows in red you notice are prisoners. This is the roof space of
  • London--all the houses are practically continuous now. The streets and
  • public squares are covered in. The gaps and chasms of your time have
  • disappeared."
  • Something out of focus obliterated half the picture. Its form suggested a
  • man. There was a gleam of metal, a flash, something that swept across the
  • oval, as the eyelid of a bird sweeps across its eye, and the picture was
  • clear again. And now Graham beheld men running down among the
  • wind-wheels, pointing weapons from which jetted out little smoky flashes.
  • They swarmed thicker and thicker to the right, gesticulating--it might be
  • they were shouting, but of that the picture told nothing. They and the
  • wind-wheels passed slowly and steadily across the field of the mirror.
  • "Now," said Ostrog, "comes the Council House," and slowly a black edge
  • crept into view and gathered Graham's attention. Soon it was no longer an
  • edge but a cavity, a huge blackened space amidst the clustering edifices,
  • and from it thin spires of smoke rose into the pallid winter sky. Gaunt
  • ruinous masses of the building, mighty truncated piers and girders, rose
  • dismally out of this cavernous darkness. And over these vestiges of some
  • splendid place, countless minute men were clambering, leaping, swarming.
  • "This is the Council House," said Ostrog. "Their last stronghold. And the
  • fools wasted enough ammunition to hold out for a month in blowing up the
  • buildings all about them--to stop our attack. You heard the smash? It
  • shattered half the brittle glass in the city."
  • And while he spoke, Graham saw that beyond this area of ruins,
  • overhanging it and rising to a great height, was a ragged mass of white
  • building. This mass had been isolated by the ruthless destruction of its
  • surroundings. Black gaps marked the passages the disaster had torn apart;
  • big halls had been slashed open and the decoration of their interiors
  • showed dismally in the wintry dawn, and down the jagged walls hung
  • festoons of divided cables and twisted ends of lines and metallic rods.
  • And amidst all the vast details moved little red specks, the red-clothed
  • defenders of the Council. Every now and then faint flashes illuminated
  • the bleak shadows. At the first sight it seemed to Graham that an attack
  • upon this isolated white building was in progress, but then he perceived
  • that the party of the revolt was not advancing, but sheltered amidst the
  • colossal wreckage that encircled this last ragged stronghold of the
  • red-garbed men, was keeping up a fitful firing.
  • And not ten hours ago he had stood beneath the ventilating fans in a
  • little chamber within that remote building wondering what was happening
  • in the world!
  • Looking more attentively as this warlike episode moved silently across
  • the centre of the mirror, Graham saw that the white building was
  • surrounded on every side by ruins, and Ostrog proceeded to describe in
  • concise phrases how its defenders had sought by such destruction to
  • isolate themselves from a storm. He spoke of the loss of men that huge
  • downfall had entailed in an indifferent tone. He indicated an improvised
  • mortuary among the wreckage, showed ambulances swarming like cheese-mites
  • along a ruinous groove that had once been a street of moving ways. He was
  • more interested in pointing out the parts of the Council House, the
  • distribution of the besiegers. In a little while the civil contest that
  • had convulsed London was no longer a mystery to Graham. It was no
  • tumultuous revolt had occurred that night, no equal warfare, but a
  • splendidly organised _coup d'état_. Ostrog's grasp of details was
  • astonishing; he seemed to know the business of even the smallest knot of
  • black and red specks that crawled amidst these places.
  • He stretched a huge black arm across the luminous picture, and showed the
  • room whence Graham had escaped, and across the chasm of ruins the course
  • of his flight. Graham recognised the gulf across which the gutter ran,
  • and the wind-wheels where he had crouched from the flying machine. The
  • rest of his path had succumbed to the explosion. He looked again at the
  • Council House, and it was already half hidden, and on the right a
  • hillside with a cluster of domes and pinnacles, hazy, dim and distant,
  • was gliding into view.
  • "And the Council is really overthrown?" he said.
  • "Overthrown," said Ostrog.
  • "And I--. Is it indeed true that I--?"
  • "You are Master of the World."
  • "But that white flag--"
  • "That is the flag of the Council--the flag of the Rule of the World. It
  • will fall. The fight is over. Their attack on the theatre was their last
  • frantic struggle. They have only a thousand men or so, and some of these
  • men will be disloyal. They have little ammunition. And we are reviving
  • the ancient arts. We are casting guns."
  • "But--help. Is this city the world?"
  • "Practically this is all they have left to them of their empire. Abroad
  • the cities have either revolted with us or wait the issue. Your awakening
  • has perplexed them, paralysed them."
  • "But haven't the Council flying machines? Why is there no fighting
  • with them?"
  • "They had. But the greater part of the aeronauts were in the revolt with
  • us. They wouldn't take the risk of fighting on our side, but they would
  • not stir against us. We _had_ to get a pull with the aeronauts. Quite
  • half were with us, and the others knew it. Directly they knew you had got
  • away, those looking for you dropped. We killed the man who shot at
  • you--an hour ago. And we occupied the flying stages at the outset in
  • every city we could, and so stopped and captured the greater aeroplanes,
  • and as for the little flying machines that turned out--for some did--we
  • kept up too straight and steady a fire for them to get near the Council
  • House. If they dropped they couldn't rise again, because there's no clear
  • space about there for them to get up. Several we have smashed, several
  • others have dropped and surrendered, the rest have gone off to the
  • Continent to find a friendly city if they can before their fuel runs out.
  • Most of these men were only too glad to be taken prisoner and kept out of
  • harm's way. Upsetting in a flying machine isn't a very attractive
  • prospect. There's no chance for the Council that way. Its days are done."
  • He laughed and turned to the oval reflection again to show Graham what he
  • meant by flying stages. Even the four nearer ones were remote and
  • obscured by a thin morning haze. But Graham could perceive they were very
  • vast structures, judged even by the standard of the things about them.
  • And then as these dim shapes passed to the left there came again the
  • sight of the expanse across which the disarmed men in red had been
  • marching. And then the black ruins, and then again the beleaguered white
  • fastness of the Council. It appeared no longer a ghostly pile, but
  • glowing amber in the sunlight, for a cloud shadow had passed. About it
  • the pigmy struggle still hung in suspense, but now the red defenders were
  • no longer firing.
  • So, in a dusky stillness, the man from the nineteenth century saw the
  • closing scene of the great revolt, the forcible establishment of his
  • rule. With a quality of startling discovery it came to him that this was
  • his world, and not that other he had left behind; that this was no
  • spectacle to culminate and cease; that in this world lay whatever life
  • was still before him, lay all his duties and dangers and
  • responsibilities. He turned with fresh questions. Ostrog began to answer
  • them, and then broke off abruptly. "But these things I must explain more
  • fully later. At present there are--duties. The people are coming by the
  • moving ways towards this ward from every part of the city--the markets
  • and theatres are densely crowded. You are just in time for them. They are
  • clamouring to see you. And abroad they want to see you. Paris, New York,
  • Chicago, Denver, Capri--thousands of cities are up and in a tumult,
  • undecided, and clamouring to see you. They have clamoured that you should
  • be awakened for years, and now it is done they will scarcely believe--"
  • "But surely--I can't go ..."
  • Ostrog answered from the other side of the room, and the picture on the
  • oval disc paled and vanished as the light jerked back again. "There are
  • kineto-telephoto-graphs," he said. "As you bow to the people here--all
  • over the world myriads of myriads of people, packed and still in darkened
  • halls, will see you also. In black and white, of course--not like this.
  • And you will hear their shouts reinforcing the shouting in the hall.
  • "And there is an optical contrivance we shall use," said Ostrog, "used by
  • some of the posturers and women dancers. It may be novel to you. You
  • stand in a very bright light, and they see not you but a magnified image
  • of you thrown on a screen--so that even the furtherest man in the
  • remotest gallery can, if he chooses, count your eyelashes."
  • Graham clutched desperately at one of the questions in his mind. "What is
  • the population of London?" he said.
  • "Eight and twaindy myriads."
  • "Eight and what?"
  • "More than thirty-three millions."
  • These figures went beyond Graham's imagination.
  • "You will be expected to say something," said Ostrog. "Not what you used
  • to call a Speech, but what our people call a word--just one sentence, six
  • or seven words. Something formal. If I might suggest--'I have awakened
  • and my heart is with you.' That is the sort of thing they want."
  • "What was that?" asked Graham.
  • "'I am awakened and my heart is with you.' And bow--bow royally. But
  • first we must get you black robes--for black is your colour. Do you mind?
  • And then they will disperse to their homes."
  • Graham hesitated. "I am in your hands," he said.
  • Ostrog was clearly of that opinion. He thought for a moment, turned to
  • the curtain and called brief directions to some unseen attendants. Almost
  • immediately a black robe, the very fellow of the black robe Graham had
  • worn in the theatre, was brought. And as he threw it about his shoulders
  • there came from the room without the shrilling of a high-pitched bell.
  • Ostrog turned in interrogation to the attendant, then suddenly seemed to
  • change his mind, pulled the curtain aside and disappeared.
  • For a moment Graham stood with the deferential attendant listening to
  • Ostrog's retreating steps. There was a sound of quick question and answer
  • and of men running. The curtain was snatched back and Ostrog reappeared,
  • his massive face glowing with excitement. He crossed the room in a
  • stride, clicked the room into darkness, gripped Graham's arm and pointed
  • to the mirror.
  • "Even as we turned away," he said.
  • Graham saw his index finger, black and colossal, above the mirrored
  • Council House. For a moment he did not understand. And then he perceived
  • that the flagstaff that had carried the white banner was bare.
  • "Do you mean--?" he began.
  • "The Council has surrendered. Its rule is at an end for evermore."
  • "Look!" and Ostrog pointed to a coil of black that crept in little jerks
  • up the vacant flagstaff, unfolding as it rose.
  • The oval picture paled as Lincoln pulled the curtain aside and entered.
  • "They are clamorous," he said.
  • Ostrog kept his grip of Graham's arm.
  • "We have raised the people," he said. "We have given them arms. For
  • to-day at least their wishes must be law."
  • Lincoln held the curtain open for Graham and Ostrog to pass through....
  • On his way to the markets Graham had a transitory glance of a long narrow
  • white-walled room in which men in the universal blue canvas were carrying
  • covered things like biers, and about which men in medical purple hurried
  • to and fro. From this room came groans and wailing. He had an impression
  • of an empty blood-stained couch, of men on other couches, bandaged and
  • blood-stained. It was just a glimpse from a railed footway and then a
  • buttress hid the place and they were going on towards the markets....
  • The roar of the multitude was near now: it leapt to thunder. And,
  • arresting his attention, a fluttering of black banners, the waving of
  • blue canvas and brown rags, and the swarming vastness of the theatre near
  • the public markets came into view down a long passage. The picture opened
  • out. He perceived they were entering the great theatre of his first
  • appearance, the great theatre he had last seen as a chequer-work of glare
  • and blackness in his flight from the red police. This time he entered it
  • along a gallery at a level high above the stage. The place was now
  • brilliantly lit again. His eyes sought the gangway up which he had fled,
  • but he could not tell it from among its dozens of fellows; nor could he
  • see anything of the smashed seats, deflated cushions, and such like
  • traces of the fight because of the density of the people. Except the
  • stage the whole place was closely packed. Looking down the effect was a
  • vast area of stippled pink, each dot a still upturned face regarding him.
  • At his appearance with Ostrog the cheering died away, the singing died
  • away, a common interest stilled and unified the disorder. It seemed as
  • though every individual of those myriads was watching him.
  • CHAPTER XIII
  • THE END OF THE OLD ORDER
  • So far as Graham was able to judge, it was near midday when the white
  • banner of the Council fell. But some hours had to elapse before it was
  • possible to effect the formal capitulation, and so after he had spoken
  • his "Word" he retired to his new apartments in the wind-vane offices. The
  • continuous excitement of the last twelve hours had left him inordinately
  • fatigued, even his curiosity was exhausted; for a space he sat inert and
  • passive with open eyes, and for a space he slept. He was roused by two
  • medical attendants, come prepared with stimulants to sustain him through
  • the next occasion. After he had taken their drugs and bathed by their
  • advice in cold water, he felt a rapid return of interest and energy, and
  • was presently able and willing to accompany Ostrog through several miles
  • (as it seemed) of passages, lifts, and slides to the closing scene of the
  • White Council's rule.
  • The way ran deviously through a maze of buildings. They came at last to a
  • passage that curved about, and showed broadening before him an oblong
  • opening, clouds hot with sunset, and the ragged skyline of the ruinous
  • Council House. A tumult of shouts came drifting up to him. In another
  • moment they had come out high up on the brow of the cliff of torn
  • buildings that overhung the wreckage. The vast area opened to Graham's
  • eyes, none the less strange and wonderful for the remote view he had had
  • of it in the oval mirror.
  • This rudely amphitheatral space seemed now the better part of a mile to
  • its outer edge. It was gold lit on the left hand, catching the sunlight,
  • and below and to the right clear and cold in the shadow. Above the
  • shadowy grey Council House that stood in the midst of it, the great black
  • banner of the surrender still hung in sluggish folds against the blazing
  • sunset. Severed rooms, halls and passages gaped strangely, broken masses
  • of metal projected dismally from the complex wreckage, vast masses of
  • twisted cable dropped like tangled seaweed, and from its base came a
  • tumult of innumerable voices, violent concussions, and the sound of
  • trumpets. All about this great white pile was a ring of desolation; the
  • smashed and blackened masses, the gaunt foundations and ruinous lumber of
  • the fabric that had been destroyed by the Council's orders, skeletons of
  • girders, Titanic masses of wall, forests of stout pillars. Amongst the
  • sombre wreckage beneath, running water flashed and glistened, and far
  • away across the space, out of the midst of a vague vast mass of
  • buildings, there thrust the twisted end of a water-main, two hundred feet
  • in the air, thunderously spouting a shining cascade. And everywhere great
  • multitudes of people.
  • Wherever there was space and foothold, people swarmed, little people,
  • small and minutely clear, except where the sunset touched them to
  • indistinguishable gold. They clambered up the tottering walls, they clung
  • in wreaths and groups about the high-standing pillars. They swarmed along
  • the edges of the circle of ruins. The air was full of their shouting, and
  • they were pressing and swaying towards the central space.
  • The upper storeys of the Council House seemed deserted, not a human
  • being was visible. Only the drooping banner of the surrender hung
  • heavily against the light. The dead were within the Council House, or
  • hidden by the swarming people, or carried away. Graham could see only a
  • few neglected bodies in gaps and corners of the ruins, and amidst the
  • flowing water.
  • "Will you let them see you, Sire?" said Ostrog. "They are very anxious
  • to see you."
  • Graham hesitated, and then walked forward to where the broken verge of
  • wall dropped sheer. He stood looking down, a lonely, tall, black figure
  • against the sky.
  • Very slowly the swarming ruins became aware of him. And as they did so
  • little bands of black-uniformed men appeared remotely, thrusting through
  • the crowds towards the Council House. He saw little black heads become
  • pink, looking at him, saw by that means a wave of recognition sweep
  • across the space. It occurred to him that he should accord them some
  • recognition. He held up his arm, then pointed to the Council House and
  • dropped his hand. The voices below became unanimous, gathered volume,
  • came up to him as multitudinous wavelets of cheering.
  • The western sky was a pallid bluish green, and Jupiter shone high in the
  • south, before the capitulation was accomplished. Above was a slow
  • insensible change, the advance of night serene and beautiful; below was
  • hurry, excitement, conflicting orders, pauses, spasmodic developments of
  • organisation, a vast ascending clamour and confusion. Before the Council
  • came out, toiling perspiring men, directed by a conflict of shouts,
  • carried forth hundreds of those who had perished in the hand-to-hand
  • conflict within those long passages and chambers....
  • Guards in black lined the way that the Council would come, and as far as
  • the eye could reach into the hazy blue twilight of the ruins, and
  • swarming now at every possible point in the captured Council House and
  • along the shattered cliff of its circumadjacent buildings, were
  • innumerable people, and their voices, even when they were not cheering,
  • were as the soughing of the sea upon a pebble beach. Ostrog had chosen a
  • huge commanding pile of crushed and overthrown masonry, and on this a
  • stage of timbers and metal girders was being hastily constructed. Its
  • essential parts were complete, but humming and clangorous machinery still
  • glared fitfully in the shadows beneath this temporary edifice.
  • The stage had a small higher portion on which Graham stood with Ostrog
  • and Lincoln close beside him, a little in advance of a group of minor
  • officers. A broader lower stage surrounded this quarter-deck, and on this
  • were the black-uniformed guards of the revolt armed with the little green
  • weapons whose very names Graham still did not know. Those standing about
  • him perceived that his eyes wandered perpetually from the swarming people
  • in the twilight ruins about him to the darkling mass of the White Council
  • House, whence the Trustees would presently come, and to the gaunt cliffs
  • of ruin that encircled him, and so back to the people. The voices of the
  • crowd swelled to a deafening tumult.
  • He saw the Councillors first afar off in the glare of one of the
  • temporary lights that marked their path, a little group of white figures
  • in a black archway. In the Council House they had been in darkness. He
  • watched them approaching, drawing nearer past first this blazing
  • electric star and then that; the minatory roar of the crowd over whom
  • their power had lasted for a hundred and fifty years marched along beside
  • them. As they drew still nearer their faces came out weary, white, and
  • anxious. He saw them blinking up through the glare about him and Ostrog.
  • He contrasted their strange cold looks in the Hall of Atlas.... Presently
  • he could recognise several of them; the man who had rapped the table at
  • Howard, a burly man with a red beard, and one delicate-featured, short,
  • dark man with a peculiarly long skull. He noted that two were whispering
  • together and looking behind him at Ostrog. Next there came a tall, dark
  • and handsome man, walking downcast. Abruptly he glanced up, his eyes
  • touched Graham for a moment, and passed beyond him to Ostrog. The way
  • that had been made for them was so contrived that they had to march past
  • and curve about before they came to the sloping path of planks that
  • ascended to the stage where their surrender was to be made.
  • "The Master, the Master! God and the Master," shouted the people. "To
  • hell with the Council!" Graham looked at their multitudes, receding
  • beyond counting into a shouting haze, and then at Ostrog beside him,
  • white and steadfast and still. His eye went again to the little group of
  • White Councillors. And then he looked up at the familiar quiet stars
  • overhead. The marvellous element in his fate was suddenly vivid. Could
  • that be his indeed, that little life in his memory two hundred years gone
  • by--and this as well?
  • CHAPTER XIV
  • FROM THE CROW'S NEST
  • And so after strange delays and through an avenue of doubt and battle,
  • this man from the nineteenth century came at last to his position at the
  • head of that complex world.
  • At first when he rose from the long deep sleep that followed his rescue
  • and the surrender of the Council, he did not recognise his surroundings.
  • By an effort he gained a clue in his mind, and all that had happened came
  • back to him, at first with a quality of insincerity like a story heard,
  • like something read out of a book. And even before his memories were
  • clear, the exultation of his escape, the wonder of his prominence were
  • back in his mind. He was owner of the world; Master of the Earth. This
  • new great age was in the completest sense his. He no longer hoped to
  • discover his experiences a dream; he became anxious now to convince
  • himself that they were real.
  • An obsequious valet assisted him to dress under the direction of a
  • dignified chief attendant, a little man whose face proclaimed him
  • Japanese, albeit he spoke English like an Englishman. From the latter he
  • learnt something of the state of affairs. Already the revolution was an
  • accepted fact; already business was being resumed throughout the city.
  • Abroad the downfall of the Council had been received for the most part
  • with delight. Nowhere was the Council popular, and the thousand cities
  • of Western America, after two hundred years still jealous of New York,
  • London, and the East, had risen almost unanimously two days before at the
  • news of Graham's imprisonment. Paris was fighting within itself. The rest
  • of the world hung in suspense.
  • While he was breaking his fast, the sound of a telephone bell jetted from
  • a corner, and his chief attendant called his attention to the voice of
  • Ostrog making polite enquiries. Graham interrupted his refreshment to
  • reply. Very shortly Lincoln arrived, and Graham at once expressed a
  • strong desire to talk to people and to be shown more of the new life that
  • was opening before him. Lincoln informed him that in three hours' time a
  • representative gathering of officials and their wives would be held in
  • the state apartments of the wind-vane Chief. Graham's desire to traverse
  • the ways of the city was, however, at present impossible, because of the
  • enormous excitement of the people. It was, however, quite possible for
  • him to take a bird's-eye view of the city from the crow's nest of the
  • wind-vane keeper. To this accordingly Graham was conducted by his
  • attendant. Lincoln; with a graceful compliment to the attendant,
  • apologised for not accompanying them, on account of the present pressure
  • of administrative work.
  • Higher even than the most gigantic, wind-wheels hung this crow's nest, a
  • clear thousand feet above the roofs, a little disc-shaped speck on a
  • spear of metallic filigree, cable stayed. To its summit Graham was drawn
  • in a little wire-hung cradle. Halfway down the frail-seeming stem was a
  • light gallery about which hung a cluster of tubes--minute they looked
  • from above--rotating slowly on the ring of its outer rail. These were the
  • specula, _en rapport_ with the wind-vane keeper's mirrors, in one of
  • which Ostrog had shown him the coming of his rule. His Japanese attendant
  • ascended before him and they spent nearly an hour asking and answering
  • questions.
  • It was a day full of the promise and quality of spring. The touch of the
  • wind warmed. The sky was an intense blue and the vast expanse of London
  • shone dazzling under the morning sun. The air was clear of smoke and
  • haze, sweet as the air of a mountain glen.
  • Save for the irregular oval of ruins about the House of the Council and
  • the black flag of the surrender that fluttered there, the mighty city
  • seen from above showed few signs of the swift revolution that had, to his
  • imagination, in one night and one day, changed the destinies of the
  • world. A multitude of people still swarmed over these ruins, and the huge
  • openwork stagings in the distance from which started in times of peace
  • the service of aeroplanes to the various great cities of Europe and
  • America, were also black with the victors. Across a narrow way of
  • planking raised on trestles that crossed the ruins a crowd of workmen
  • were busy restoring the connection between the cables and wires of the
  • Council House and the rest of the city, preparatory to the transfer
  • thither of Ostrog's headquarters from the Wind-Vane buildings.
  • For the rest the luminous expanse was undisturbed. So vast was its
  • serenity in comparison with the areas of disturbance, that presently
  • Graham, looking beyond them, could almost forget the thousands of men
  • lying out of sight in the artificial glare within the quasi-subterranean
  • labyrinth, dead or dying of the overnight wounds, forget the improvised
  • wards with the hosts of surgeons, nurses, and bearers feverishly busy,
  • forget, indeed, all the wonder, consternation and novelty under the
  • electric lights. Down there in the hidden ways of the anthill he knew
  • that the revolution triumphed, that black everywhere carried the day,
  • black favours, black banners, black festoons across the streets. And out
  • here, under the fresh sunlight, beyond the crater of the fight, as if
  • nothing had happened to the earth, the forest of wind vanes that had
  • grown from one or two while the Council had ruled, roared peacefully upon
  • their incessant duty.
  • Far away, spiked, jagged and indented by the wind vanes, the Surrey Hills
  • rose blue and faint; to the north and nearer, the sharp contours of
  • Highgate and Muswell Hill were similarly jagged. And all over the
  • countryside, he knew, on every crest and hill, where once the hedges had
  • interlaced, and cottages, churches, inns, and farm houses had nestled
  • among their trees, wind-wheels similar to those he saw and bearing like
  • them vast advertisements, gaunt and distinctive symbols of the new age,
  • cast their whirling shadows and stored incessantly the energy that flowed
  • away incessantly through all the arteries of the city. And underneath
  • these wandered the countless flocks and herds of the British Food Trust,
  • his property, with their lonely guards and keepers.
  • Not a familiar outline anywhere broke the cluster of gigantic shapes
  • below. St. Paul's he knew survived, and many of the old buildings in
  • Westminster, embedded out of sight, arched over and covered in among the
  • giant growths of this great age. The Thames, too, made no fall and gleam
  • of silver to break the wilderness of the city; the thirsty water mains
  • drank up every drop of its waters before they reached the walls. Its bed
  • and estuary, scoured and sunken, was now a canal of sea water, and a race
  • of grimy bargemen brought the heavy materials of trade from the Pool
  • thereby beneath the very feet of the workers. Faint and dim in the
  • eastward between earth and sky hung the clustering masts of the colossal
  • shipping in the Pool. For all the heavy traffic, for which there was no
  • need of haste, came in gigantic sailing ships from the ends of the earth,
  • and the heavy goods for which there was urgency in mechanical ships of a
  • smaller swifter sort.
  • And to the south over the hills came vast aqueducts with sea water for
  • the sewers, and in three separate directions ran pallid lines--the roads,
  • stippled with moving grey specks. On the first occasion that offered he
  • was determined to go out and see these roads. That would come after the
  • flying ship he was presently to try. His attendant officer described them
  • as a pair of gently curving surfaces a hundred yards wide, each one for
  • the traffic going in one direction, and made of a substance called
  • Eadhamite--an artificial substance, so far as he could gather, resembling
  • toughened glass. Along this shot a strange traffic of narrow rubber-shod
  • vehicles, great single wheels, two and four wheeled vehicles, sweeping
  • along at velocities of from one to six miles a minute. Railroads had
  • vanished; a few embankments remained as rust-crowned trenches here and
  • there. Some few formed the cores of Eadhamite ways.
  • Among the first things to strike his attention had been the great fleets
  • of advertisement balloons and kites that receded in irregular vistas
  • northward and southward along the lines of the aeroplane journeys. No
  • great aeroplanes were to be seen. Their passages had ceased, and only one
  • little-seeming monoplane circled high in the blue distance above the
  • Surrey Hills, an unimpressive soaring speck.
  • A thing Graham had already learnt, and which he found very hard to
  • imagine, was that nearly all the towns in the country, and almost all the
  • villages, had disappeared. Here and there only, he understood, some
  • gigantic hotel-like edifice stood amid square miles of some single
  • cultivation and preserved the name of a town--as Bournemouth, Wareham, or
  • Swanage. Yet the officer had speedily convinced him how inevitable such a
  • change had been. The old order had dotted the country with farmhouses,
  • and every two or three miles was the ruling landlord's estate, and the
  • place of the inn and cobbler, the grocer's shop and church--the village.
  • Every eight miles or so was the country town, where lawyer, corn
  • merchant, wool-stapler, saddler, veterinary surgeon, doctor, draper,
  • milliner and so forth lived. Every eight miles--simply because that eight
  • mile marketing journey, four there and back, was as much as was
  • comfortable for the farmer. But directly the railways came into play, and
  • after them the light railways, and all the swift new motor cars that had
  • replaced waggons and horses, and so soon as the high roads began to be
  • made of wood, and rubber, and Eadhamite, and all sorts of elastic durable
  • substances--the necessity of having such frequent market towns
  • disappeared. And the big towns grew. They drew the worker with the
  • gravitational force of seemingly endless work, the employer with their
  • suggestion of an infinite ocean of labour.
  • And as the standard of comfort rose, as the complexity of the mechanism
  • of living increased, life in the country had become more and more costly,
  • or narrow and impossible. The disappearance of vicar and squire, the
  • extinction of the general practitioner by the city specialist; had robbed
  • the village of its last touch of culture. After telephone, kinematograph
  • and phonograph had replaced newspaper, book, schoolmaster, and letter, to
  • live outside the range of the electric cables was to live an isolated
  • savage. In the country were neither means of being clothed nor fed
  • (according to the refined conceptions of the time), no efficient doctors
  • for an emergency, no company and no pursuits.
  • Moreover, mechanical appliances in agriculture made one engineer the
  • equivalent of thirty labourers. So, inverting the condition of the city
  • clerk in the days when London was scarce inhabitable because of the coaly
  • foulness of its air, the labourers now came to the city and its life and
  • delights at night to leave it again in the morning. The city had
  • swallowed up humanity; man had entered upon a new stage in his
  • development. First had come the nomad, the hunter, then had followed the
  • agriculturist of the agricultural state, whose towns and cities and ports
  • were but the headquarters and markets of the countryside. And now,
  • logical consequence of an epoch of invention, was this huge new
  • aggregation of men.
  • Such things as these, simple statements of fact though they were to
  • contemporary men, strained Graham's imagination to picture. And when he
  • glanced "over beyond there" at the strange things that existed on the
  • Continent, it failed him altogether.
  • He had a vision of city beyond city; cities on great plains, cities
  • beside great rivers, vast cities along the sea margin, cities girdled by
  • snowy mountains. Over a great part of the earth the English tongue was
  • spoken; taken together with its Spanish American and Hindoo and Negro and
  • "Pidgin" dialects, it was the everyday-language of two-thirds of
  • humanity. On the Continent, save as remote and curious survivals, three
  • other languages alone held sway--German, which reached to Antioch and
  • Genoa and jostled Spanish-English at Cadiz; a Gallicised Russian which
  • met the Indian English in Persia and Kurdistan and the "Pidgin" English
  • in Pekin; and French still clear and brilliant, the language of lucidity,
  • which shared the Mediterranean with the Indian English and German and
  • reached through a negro dialect to the Congo.
  • And everywhere now through the city-set earth, save in the administered
  • "black belt" territories of the tropics, the same cosmopolitan social
  • organisation prevailed, and everywhere from Pole to Equator his property
  • and his responsibilities extended. The whole world was civilised; the
  • whole world dwelt in cities; the whole world was his property....
  • Out of the dim south-west, glittering and strange, voluptuous, and in
  • some way terrible, shone those Pleasure Cities of which the
  • kinematograph-phonograph and the old man in the street had spoken.
  • Strange places reminiscent of the legendary Sybaris, cities of art
  • and beauty, mercenary art and mercenary beauty, sterile wonderful
  • cities of motion and music, whither repaired all who profited by the
  • fierce, inglorious, economic struggle that went on in the glaring
  • labyrinth below.
  • Fierce he knew it was. How fierce he could judge from the fact that these
  • latter-day people referred back to the England of the nineteenth century
  • as the figure of an idyllic easy-going life. He turned his eyes to the
  • scene immediately before him again, trying to conceive the big factories
  • of that intricate maze....
  • CHAPTER XV
  • PROMINENT PEOPLE
  • The state apartments of the Wind Vane Keeper would have astonished Graham
  • had he entered them fresh from his nineteenth century life, but already
  • he was growing accustomed to the scale of the new time. He came out
  • through one of the now familiar sliding panels upon a plateau of landing
  • at the head of a flight of very broad and gentle steps, with men and
  • women far more brilliantly dressed than any he had hitherto seen,
  • ascending and descending. From this position he looked down a vista of
  • subtle and varied ornament in lustreless white and mauve and purple,
  • spanned by bridges that seemed wrought of porcelain and filigree, and
  • terminating far off in a cloudy mystery of perforated screens.
  • Glancing upward, he saw tier above tier of ascending galleries with faces
  • looking down upon him. The air was full of the babble of innumerable
  • voices and of a music that descended from above, a gay and exhilarating
  • music whose source he did not discover.
  • The central aisle was thick with people, but by no means uncomfortably
  • crowded; altogether that assembly must have numbered many thousands. They
  • were brilliantly, even fantastically dressed, the men as fancifully as
  • the women, for the sobering influence of the Puritan conception of
  • dignity upon masculine dress had long since passed away. The hair of the
  • men, too, though it was rarely worn long, was commonly curled in a
  • manner that suggested the barber, and baldness had vanished from the
  • earth. Frizzy straight-cut masses that would have charmed Rossetti
  • abounded, and one gentleman, who was pointed out to Graham under the
  • mysterious title of an "amorist," wore his hair in two becoming plaits _à
  • la_ Marguerite. The pigtail was in evidence; it would seem that citizens
  • of Chinese extraction were no longer ashamed of their race. There was
  • little uniformity of fashion apparent in the forms of clothing worn. The
  • more shapely men displayed their symmetry in trunk hose, and here were
  • puffs and slashes, and there a cloak and there a robe. The fashions of
  • the days of Leo the Tenth were perhaps the prevailing influence, but the
  • aesthetic conceptions of the far east were also patent. Masculine
  • embonpoint, which, in Victorian times, would have been subjected to the
  • buttoned perils, the ruthless exaggeration of tight-legged tight-armed
  • evening dress, now formed but the basis of a wealth of dignity and
  • drooping folds. Graceful slenderness abounded also. To Graham, a
  • typically stiff man from a typically stiff period, not only did these men
  • seem altogether too graceful in person, but altogether too expressive in
  • their vividly expressive faces. They gesticulated, they expressed
  • surprise, interest, amusement, above all, they expressed the emotions
  • excited in their minds by the ladies about them with astonishing
  • frankness. Even at the first glance it was evident that women were in a
  • great majority.
  • The ladies in the company of these gentlemen displayed in dress, bearing
  • and manner alike, less emphasis and more intricacy. Some affected a
  • classical simplicity of robing and subtlety of fold, after the fashion of
  • the First French Empire, and flashed conquering arms and shoulders as
  • Graham passed. Others had closely-fitting dresses without seam or belt at
  • the waist, sometimes with long folds falling from the shoulders. The
  • delightful confidences of evening dress had not been diminished by the
  • passage of two centuries.
  • Everyone's movements seemed graceful. Graham remarked to Lincoln that he
  • saw men as Raphael's cartoons walking, and Lincoln told him that the
  • attainment of an appropriate set of gestures was part of every rich
  • person's education. The Master's entry was greeted with a sort of
  • tittering applause, but these people showed their distinguished manners
  • by not crowding upon him nor annoying him by any persistent scrutiny, as
  • he descended the steps towards the floor of the aisle.
  • He had already learnt from Lincoln that these were the leaders of
  • existing London society; almost every person there that night was either
  • a powerful official or the immediate connexion of a powerful official.
  • Many had returned from the European Pleasure Cities expressly to welcome
  • him. The aeronautic authorities, whose defection had played a part in the
  • overthrow of the Council only second to Graham's, were very prominent,
  • and so, too, was the Wind Vane Control. Amongst others there were several
  • of the more prominent officers of the Food Department; the controller of
  • the European Piggeries had a particularly melancholy and interesting
  • countenance and a daintily cynical manner. A bishop in full canonicals
  • passed athwart Graham's vision, conversing with a gentleman dressed
  • exactly like the traditional Chaucer, including even the laurel wreath.
  • "Who is that?" he asked almost involuntarily.
  • "The Bishop of London," said Lincoln.
  • "No--the other, I mean."
  • "Poet Laureate."
  • "You still--?"
  • "He doesn't make poetry, of course. He's a cousin of Wotton--one of the
  • Councillors. But he's one of the Red Rose Royalists--a delightful
  • club--and they keep up the tradition of these things."
  • "Asano told me there was a King."
  • "The King doesn't belong. They had to expel him. It's the Stuart blood, I
  • suppose; but really--"
  • "Too much?"
  • "Far too much."
  • Graham did not quite follow all this, but it seemed part of the general
  • inversion of the new age. He bowed condescendingly to his first
  • introduction. It was evident that subtle distinctions of class prevailed
  • even in this assembly, that only to a small proportion of the guests, to
  • an inner group, did Lincoln consider it appropriate to introduce him.
  • This first introduction was the Master Aeronaut, a man whose sun-tanned
  • face contrasted oddly with the delicate complexions about him. Just at
  • present his critical defection from the Council made him a very important
  • person indeed.
  • His manner contrasted very favourably, according to Graham's ideas, with
  • the general bearing. He offered a few commonplace remarks, assurances of
  • loyalty and frank inquiries about the Master's health. His manner was
  • breezy, his accent lacked the easy staccato of latter-day English. He
  • made it admirably clear to Graham that he was a bluff "aerial dog"--he
  • used that phrase--that there was no nonsense about him, that he was a
  • thoroughly manly fellow and old-fashioned at that, that he didn't profess
  • to know much, and that what he did not know was not worth knowing. He
  • made a curt bow, ostentatiously free from obsequiousness, and passed.
  • "I am glad to see that type endures," said Graham.
  • "Phonographs and kinematographs," said Lincoln, a little spitefully. "He
  • has studied from the life." Graham glanced at the burly form again. It
  • was oddly reminiscent.
  • "As a matter of fact we bought him," said Lincoln. "Partly. And partly he
  • was afraid of Ostrog. Everything rested with him."
  • He turned sharply to introduce the Surveyor-General of the Public
  • Schools. This person was a willowy figure in a blue-grey academic gown,
  • he beamed down upon Graham through _pince-nez_ of a Victorian pattern,
  • and illustrated his remarks by gestures of a beautifully manicured hand.
  • Graham was immediately interested in this gentleman's functions, and
  • asked him a number of singularly direct questions. The Surveyor-General
  • seemed quietly amused at the Master's fundamental bluntness. He was a
  • little vague as to the monopoly of education his Company possessed; it
  • was done by contract with the syndicate that ran the numerous London
  • Municipalities, but he waxed enthusiastic over educational progress
  • since the Victorian times. "We have conquered Cram," he said,
  • "completely conquered Cram--there is not an examination left in the
  • world. Aren't you glad?"
  • "How do you get the work done?" asked Graham.
  • "We make it attractive--as attractive as possible. And if it does not
  • attract then--we let it go. We cover an immense field."
  • He proceeded to details, and they had a lengthy conversation. Graham
  • learnt that University Extension still existed in a modified form. "There
  • is a certain type of girl, for example," said the Surveyor-General,
  • dilating with a sense of his usefulness, "with a perfect passion for
  • severe studies--when they are not too difficult you know. We cater for
  • them by the thousand. At this moment," he said with a Napoleonic touch,
  • "nearly five hundred phonographs are lecturing in different parts of
  • London on the influence exercised by Plato and Swift on the love affairs
  • of Shelley, Hazlitt, and Burns. And afterwards they write essays on the
  • lectures, and the names in order of merit are put in conspicuous places.
  • You see how your little germ has grown? The illiterate middle-class of
  • your days has quite passed away."
  • "About the public elementary schools," said Graham. "Do you
  • control them?"
  • The Surveyor-General did, "entirely." Now, Graham, in his later
  • democratic days, had taken a keen interest in these and his questioning
  • quickened. Certain casual phrases that had fallen from the old man with
  • whom he had talked in the darkness recurred to him. The Surveyor-General,
  • in effect, endorsed the old man's words. "We try and make the elementary
  • schools very pleasant for the little children. They will have to work so
  • soon. Just a few simple principles--obedience--industry."
  • "You teach them very little?"
  • "Why should we? It only leads to trouble and discontent. We amuse them.
  • Even as it is--there are troubles--agitations. Where the labourers get
  • the ideas, one cannot tell. They tell one another. There are socialistic
  • dreams--anarchy even! Agitators _will_ get to work among them. I take
  • it--I have always taken it--that my foremost duty is to fight against
  • popular discontent. Why should people be made unhappy?"
  • "I wonder," said Graham thoughtfully. "But there are a great many things
  • I want to know."
  • Lincoln, who had stood watching Graham's face throughout the
  • conversation, intervened. "There are others," he said in an undertone.
  • The Surveyor-General of schools gesticulated himself away. "Perhaps,"
  • said Lincoln, intercepting a casual glance, "you would like to know some
  • of these ladies?"
  • The daughter of the Manager of the Piggeries was a particularly charming
  • little person with red hair and animated blue eyes. Lincoln left him
  • awhile to converse with her, and she displayed herself as quite an
  • enthusiast for the "dear old days," as she called them, that had seen the
  • beginning of his trance. As she talked she smiled, and her eyes smiled in
  • a manner that demanded reciprocity.
  • "I have tried," she said, "countless times--to imagine those old romantic
  • days. And to you--they are memories. How strange and crowded the world
  • must seem to you! I have seen photographs and pictures of the past, the
  • little isolated houses built of bricks made out of burnt mud and all
  • black with soot from your fires, the railway bridges, the simple
  • advertisements, the solemn savage Puritanical men in strange black coats
  • and those tall hats of theirs, iron railway trains on iron bridges
  • overhead, horses and cattle, and even dogs running half wild about the
  • streets. And suddenly, you have come into this!"
  • "Into this," said Graham.
  • "Out of your life--out of all that was familiar."
  • "The old life was not a happy one," said Graham. "I do not regret that."
  • She looked at him quickly. There was a brief pause. She sighed
  • encouragingly. "No?"
  • "No," said Graham. "It was a little life--and unmeaning. But this--We
  • thought the world complex and crowded and civilised enough. Yet I
  • see--although in this world I am barely four days old--looking back on my
  • own time, that it was a queer, barbaric time--the mere beginning of this
  • new order. The mere beginning of this new order. You will find it hard to
  • understand how little I know."
  • "You may ask me what you like," she said, smiling at him.
  • "Then tell me who these people are. I'm still very much in the dark about
  • them. It's puzzling. Are there any Generals?"
  • "Men in hats and feathers?"
  • "Of course not. No. I suppose they are the men who control the great
  • public businesses. Who is that distinguished looking man?"
  • "That? He's a most important officer. That is Morden. He is managing
  • director of the Antibilious Pill Department. I have heard that his
  • workers sometimes turn out a myriad myriad pills a day in the twenty-four
  • hours. Fancy a myriad myriad!"
  • "A myriad myriad. No wonder he looks proud," said Graham. "Pills! What a
  • wonderful time it is! That man in purple?"
  • "He is not quite one of the inner circle, you know. But we like him. He
  • is really clever and very amusing. He is one of the heads of the Medical
  • Faculty of our London University. All medical men, you know, wear that
  • purple. But, of course, people who are paid by fees for _doing_
  • something--" She smiled away the social pretensions of all such people.
  • "Are any of your great artists or authors here?"
  • "No authors. They are mostly such queer people--and so preoccupied about
  • themselves. And they quarrel so dreadfully! They will fight, some of
  • them, for precedence on staircases! Dreadful, isn't it? But I think
  • Wraysbury, the fashionable capillotomist, is here. From Capri."
  • "Capillotomist," said Graham. "Ah! I remember. An artist! Why not?"
  • "We have to cultivate him," she said apologetically. "Our heads are in
  • his hands." She smiled.
  • Graham hesitated at the invited compliment, but his glance was
  • expressive. "Have the arts grown with the rest of civilised things?" he
  • said. "Who are your great painters?"
  • She looked at him doubtfully. Then laughed. "For a moment," she said, "I
  • thought you meant--" She laughed again. "You mean, of course, those good
  • men you used to think so much of because they could cover great spaces of
  • canvas with oil-colours? Great oblongs. And people used to put the things
  • in gilt frames and hang them up in rows in their square rooms. We haven't
  • any. People grew tired of that sort of thing."
  • "But what did you think I meant?"
  • She put a finger significantly on a cheek whose glow was above suspicion,
  • and smiled and looked very arch and pretty and inviting. "And here," and
  • she indicated her eyelid.
  • Graham had an adventurous moment. Then a grotesque memory of a picture he
  • had somewhere seen of Uncle Toby and the widow flashed across his mind.
  • An archaic shame came upon him. He became acutely aware that he was
  • visible to a great number of interested people. "I see," he remarked
  • inadequately. He turned awkwardly away from her fascinating facility. He
  • looked about him to meet a number of eyes that immediately occupied
  • themselves with other things. Possibly he coloured a little. "Who is that
  • talking with the lady in saffron?" he asked, avoiding her eyes.
  • The person in question he learnt was one of the great organisers of the
  • American theatres just fresh from a gigantic production at Mexico. His
  • face reminded Graham of a bust of Caligula. Another striking looking man
  • was the Black Labour Master. The phrase at the time made no deep
  • impression, but afterwards it recurred;--the Black Labour Master? The
  • little lady in no degree embarrassed, pointed out to him a charming
  • little woman as one of the subsidiary wives of the Anglican Bishop of
  • London. She added encomiums on the episcopal courage--hitherto there had
  • been a rule of clerical monogamy--"neither a natural nor an expedient
  • condition of things. Why should the natural development of the affections
  • be dwarfed and restricted because a man is a priest?"
  • "And, bye the bye," she added, "are you an Anglican?" Graham was on the
  • verge of hesitating inquiries about the status of a "subsidiary wife,"
  • apparently an euphemistic phrase, when Lincoln's return broke off this
  • very suggestive and interesting conversation. They crossed the aisle to
  • where a tall man in crimson, and two charming persons in Burmese costume
  • (as it seemed to him) awaited him diffidently. From their civilities he
  • passed to other presentations.
  • In a little while his multitudinous impressions began to organise
  • themselves into a general effect. At first the glitter of the gathering
  • had raised all the democrat in Graham; he had felt hostile and satirical.
  • But it is not in human nature to resist an atmosphere of courteous
  • regard. Soon the music, the light, the play of colours, the shining arms
  • and shoulders about him, the touch of hands, the transient interest of
  • smiling faces, the frothing sound of skilfully modulated voices, the
  • atmosphere of compliment, interest and respect, had woven together into a
  • fabric of indisputable pleasure. Graham for a time forgot his spacious
  • resolutions. He gave way insensibly to the intoxication of the position
  • that was conceded him, his manner became more convincingly regal, his
  • feet walked assuredly, the black robe fell with a bolder fold and pride
  • ennobled his voice. After all, this was a brilliant interesting world.
  • He looked up and saw passing across a bridge of porcelain and looking
  • down upon him, a face that was almost immediately hidden, the face of the
  • girl he had seen overnight in the little room beyond the theatre after
  • his escape from the Council. And she was watching him.
  • For the moment he did not remember when he had seen her, and then came a
  • vague memory of the stirring emotions of their first encounter. But the
  • dancing web of melody about him kept the air of that great marching song
  • from his memory.
  • The lady to whom he talked repeated her remark, and Graham recalled
  • himself to the quasi-regal flirtation upon which he was engaged.
  • Yet, unaccountably, a vague restlessness, a feeling that grew to
  • dissatisfaction, came into his mind. He was troubled as if by some half
  • forgotten duty, by the sense of things important slipping from him amidst
  • this light and brilliance. The attraction that these ladies who crowded
  • about him were beginning to exercise ceased. He no longer gave vague and
  • clumsy responses to the subtly amorous advances that he was now assured
  • were being made to him, and his eyes wandered for another sight of the
  • girl of the first revolt.
  • Where, precisely, had he seen her?...
  • Graham was in one of the upper galleries in conversation with a
  • bright-eyed lady on the subject of Eadhamite--the subject was his choice
  • and not hers. He had interrupted her warm assurances of personal devotion
  • with a matter-of-fact inquiry. He found her, as he had already found
  • several other latter-day women that night, less well informed than
  • charming. Suddenly, struggling against the eddying drift of nearer
  • melody, the song of the Revolt, the great song he had heard in the Hall,
  • hoarse and massive, came beating down to him.
  • Ah! Now he remembered!
  • He glanced up startled, and perceived above him an _oeil de boeuf_
  • through which this song had come, and beyond, the upper courses of cable,
  • the blue haze, and the pendant fabric of the lights of the public ways.
  • He heard the song break into a tumult of voices and cease. He perceived
  • quite clearly the drone and tumult of the moving platforms and a murmur
  • of many people. He had a vague persuasion that he could not account for,
  • a sort of instinctive feeling that outside in the ways a huge crowd must
  • be watching this place in which their Master amused himself.
  • Though the song had stopped so abruptly, though the special music of
  • this gathering reasserted itself, the _motif_ of the marching song, once
  • it had begun, lingered in his mind.
  • The bright-eyed lady was still struggling with the mysteries of Eadhamite
  • when he perceived the girl he had seen in the theatre again. She was
  • coming now along the gallery towards him; he saw her first before she saw
  • him. She was dressed in a faintly luminous grey, her dark hair about her
  • brows was like a cloud, and as he saw her the cold light from the
  • circular opening into the ways fell upon her downcast face.
  • The lady in trouble about the Eadhamite saw the change in his expression,
  • and grasped her opportunity to escape. "Would you care to know that girl,
  • Sire?" she asked boldly. "She is Helen Wotton--a niece of Ostrog's. She
  • knows a great many serious things. She is one of the most serious persons
  • alive. I am sure you will like her."
  • In another moment Graham was talking to the girl, and the bright-eyed
  • lady had fluttered away.
  • "I remember you quite well," said Graham. "You were in that little room.
  • When all the people were singing and beating time with their feet. Before
  • I walked across the Hall."
  • Her momentary embarrassment passed. She looked up at him, and her face
  • was steady. "It was wonderful," she said, hesitated, and spoke with a
  • sudden effort. "All those people would have died for you, Sire. Countless
  • people did die for you that night."
  • Her face glowed. She glanced swiftly aside to see that no other heard
  • her words.
  • Lincoln appeared some way off along the gallery, making his way through
  • the press towards them. She saw him and turned to Graham strangely
  • eager, with a swift change to confidence and intimacy. "Sire," she said
  • quickly, "I cannot tell you now and here. But the common people are very
  • unhappy; they are oppressed--they are misgoverned. Do not forget the
  • people, who faced death--death that you might live."
  • "I know nothing--" began Graham.
  • "I cannot tell you now."
  • Lincoln's face appeared close to them. He bowed an apology to the girl.
  • "You find the new world amusing, Sire?" asked Lincoln, with smiling
  • deference, and indicating the space and splendour of the gathering by one
  • comprehensive gesture. "At any rate, you find it changed."
  • "Yes," said Graham, "changed. And yet, after all, not so greatly
  • changed."
  • "Wait till you are in the air," said Lincoln. "The wind has fallen; even
  • now an aeroplane awaits you."
  • The girl's attitude awaited dismissal.
  • Graham glanced at her face, was on the verge of a question, found a
  • warning in her expression, bowed to her and turned to accompany Lincoln.
  • CHAPTER XVI
  • THE MONOPLANE
  • The Flying Stages of London were collected together in an irregular
  • crescent on the southern side of the river. They formed three groups of
  • two each and retained the names of ancient suburban hills or villages.
  • They were named in order, Roehampton, Wimbledon Park, Streatham, Norwood,
  • Blackheath, and Shooter's Hill. They were uniform structures rising high
  • above the general roof surfaces. Each was about four thousand yards long
  • and a thousand broad, and constructed of the compound of aluminum and
  • iron that had replaced iron in architecture. Their higher tiers formed an
  • openwork of girders through which lifts and staircases ascended. The
  • upper surface was a uniform expanse, with portions--the starting
  • carriers--that could be raised and were then able to run on very slightly
  • inclined rails to the end of the fabric.
  • Graham went to the flying stages by the public ways. He was accompanied
  • by Asano, his Japanese attendant. Lincoln was called away by Ostrog, who
  • was busy with his administrative concerns. A strong guard of the
  • Wind-Vane police awaited the Master outside the Wind-Vane offices, and
  • they cleared a space for him on the upper moving platform. His passage to
  • the flying stages was unexpected, nevertheless a considerable crowd
  • gathered and followed him to his destination. As he went along, he could
  • hear the people shouting his name, and saw numberless men and women and
  • children in blue come swarming up the staircases in the central path,
  • gesticulating and shouting. He could not hear what they shouted. He was
  • struck again by the evident existence of a vulgar dialect among the poor
  • of the city. When at last he descended, his guards were immediately
  • surrounded by a dense excited crowd. Afterwards it occurred to him that
  • some had attempted to reach him with petitions. His guards cleared a
  • passage for him with difficulty.
  • He found a monoplane in charge of an aeronaut awaiting him on the
  • westward stage. Seen close this mechanism was no longer small. As it lay
  • on its launching carrier upon the wide expanse of the flying stage, its
  • aluminum body skeleton was as big as the hull of a twenty-ton yacht. Its
  • lateral supporting sails braced and stayed with metal nerves almost like
  • the nerves of a bee's wing, and made of some sort of glassy artificial
  • membrane, cast their shadow over many hundreds of square yards. The
  • chairs for the engineer and his passenger hung free to swing by a complex
  • tackle, within the protecting ribs of the frame and well abaft the
  • middle. The passenger's chair was protected by a wind-guard and guarded
  • about with metallic rods carrying air cushions. It could, if desired, be
  • completely closed in, but Graham was anxious for novel experiences, and
  • desired that it should be left open. The aeronaut sat behind a glass that
  • sheltered his face. The passenger could secure himself firmly in his
  • seat, and this was almost unavoidable on landing, or he could move along
  • by means of a little rail and rod to a locker at the stem of the machine,
  • where his personal luggage, his wraps and restoratives were placed, and
  • which also with the seats, served as a makeweight to the parts of the
  • central engine that projected to the propeller at the stern.
  • The flying stage about him was empty save for Asano and their suite of
  • attendants. Directed by the aeronaut he placed himself in his seat. Asano
  • stepped through the bars of the hull, and stood below on the stage waving
  • his hand. He seemed to slide along the stage to the right and vanish.
  • The engine was humming loudly, the propeller spinning, and for a second
  • the stage and the buildings beyond were gliding swiftly and horizontally
  • past Graham's eye; then these things seemed to tilt up abruptly. He
  • gripped the little rods on either side of him instinctively. He felt
  • himself moving upward, heard the air whistle over the top of the wind
  • screen. The propeller screw moved round with powerful rhythmic
  • impulses--one, two, three, pause; one, two, three--which the engineer
  • controlled very delicately. The machine began a quivering vibration that
  • continued throughout the flight, and the roof areas seemed running away
  • to starboard very quickly and growing rapidly smaller. He looked from
  • the face of the engineer through the ribs of the machine. Looking
  • sideways, there was nothing very startling in what he saw--a rapid
  • funicular railway might have given the same sensations. He recognised
  • the Council House and the Highgate Ridge. And then he looked straight
  • down between his feet.
  • For a moment physical terror possessed him, a passionate sense of
  • insecurity. He held tight. For a second or so he could not lift his eyes.
  • Some hundred feet or more sheer below him was one of the big wind-vanes
  • of south-west London, and beyond it the southernmost flying stage crowded
  • with little black dots. These things seemed to be falling away from him.
  • For a second he had an impulse to pursue the earth. He set his teeth, he
  • lifted his eyes by a muscular effort, and the moment of panic passed.
  • He remained for a space with his teeth set hard, his eyes staring into
  • the sky. Throb, throb, throb--beat, went the engine; throb, throb,
  • throb--beat. He gripped his bars tightly, glanced at the aeronaut, and
  • saw a smile upon his sun-tanned face. He smiled in return--perhaps a
  • little artificially. "A little strange at first," he shouted before he
  • recalled his dignity. But he dared not look down again for some time. He
  • stared over the aeronaut's head to where a rim of vague blue horizon
  • crept up the sky. For a little while he could not banish the thought of
  • possible accidents from his mind. Throb, throb, throb--beat; suppose some
  • trivial screw went wrong in that supporting engine! Suppose--! He made a
  • grim effort to dismiss all such suppositions. After a while they did at
  • least abandon the foreground of his thoughts. And up he went steadily,
  • higher and higher into the clear air.
  • Once the mental shock of moving unsupported through the air was over,
  • his sensations ceased to be unpleasant, became very speedily
  • pleasurable. He had been warned of air sickness. But he found the
  • pulsating movement of the monoplane as it drove up the faint south-west
  • breeze was very little in excess of the pitching of a boat head on to
  • broad rollers in a moderate gale, and he was constitutionally a good
  • sailor. And the keenness of the more rarefied air into which they
  • ascended produced a sense of lightness and exhilaration. He looked up
  • and saw the blue sky above fretted with cirrus clouds. His eye came
  • cautiously down through the ribs and bars to a shining flight of white
  • birds that hung in the lower sky. For a space he watched these. Then
  • going lower and less apprehensively, he saw the slender figure of the
  • Wind-Vane keeper's crow's nest shining golden in the sunlight and
  • growing smaller every moment. As his eye fell with more confidence now,
  • there came a blue line of hills, and then London, already to leeward, an
  • intricate space of roofing. Its near edge came sharp and clear, and
  • banished his last apprehensions in a shock of surprise. For the boundary
  • of London was like a wall, like a cliff, a steep fall of three or four
  • hundred feet, a frontage broken only by terraces here and there, a
  • complex decorative façade.
  • That gradual passage of town into country through an extensive sponge of
  • suburbs, which was so characteristic a feature of the great cities of the
  • nineteenth century, existed no longer. Nothing remained of it here but a
  • waste of ruins, variegated and dense with thickets of the heterogeneous
  • growths that had once adorned the gardens of the belt, interspersed among
  • levelled brown patches of sown ground, and verdant stretches of winter
  • greens. The latter even spread among the vestiges of houses. But for the
  • most part the reefs and skerries of ruins, the wreckage of suburban
  • villas, stood among their streets and roads, queer islands amidst the
  • levelled expanses of green and brown, abandoned indeed by the inhabitants
  • years since, but too substantial, it seemed, to be cleared out of the way
  • of the wholesale horticultural mechanisms of the time.
  • The vegetation of this waste undulated and frothed amidst the countless
  • cells of crumbling house walls, and broke along the foot of the city wall
  • in a surf of bramble and holly and ivy and teazle and tall grasses. Here
  • and there gaudy pleasure palaces towered amidst the puny remains of
  • Victorian times, and cable ways slanted to them from the city. That
  • winter day they seemed deserted. Deserted, too, were the artificial
  • gardens among the ruins. The city limits were indeed as sharply defined
  • as in the ancient days when the gates were shut at nightfall and the
  • robber foeman prowled to the very walls. A huge semi-circular throat
  • poured out a vigorous traffic upon the Eadhamite Bath Road. So the first
  • prospect of the world beyond the city flashed on Graham, and dwindled.
  • And when at last he could look vertically downward again, he saw below
  • him the vegetable fields of the Thames valley--innumerable minute oblongs
  • of ruddy brown, intersected by shining threads, the sewage ditches.
  • His exhilaration increased rapidly, became a sort of intoxication. He
  • found himself drawing deep breaths of air, laughing aloud, desiring to
  • shout. After a time that desire became too strong for him, and he
  • shouted. They curved about towards the south. They drove with a slight
  • list to leeward, and with a slow alternation of movement, first a short,
  • sharp ascent and then a long downward glide that was very swift and
  • pleasing. During these downward glides the propeller was inactive
  • altogether. These ascents gave Graham a glorious sense of successful
  • effort; the descents through the rarefied air were beyond all experience.
  • He wanted never to leave the upper air again.
  • For a time he was intent upon the landscape that ran swiftly northward
  • beneath him. Its minute, clear detail pleased him exceedingly. He was
  • impressed by the ruin of the houses that had once dotted the country, by
  • the vast treeless expanse of country from which all farms and villages
  • had gone, save for crumbling ruins. He had known the thing was so, but
  • seeing it so was an altogether different matter. He tried to make out
  • familiar places within the hollow basin of the world below, but at first
  • he could distinguish no data now that the Thames valley was left behind.
  • Soon, however, they were driving over a sharp chalk hill that he
  • recognised as the Guildford Hog's Back, because of the familiar outline
  • of the gorge at its eastward end, and because of the ruins of the town
  • that rose steeply on either lip of this gorge. And from that he made out
  • other points, Leith Hill, the sandy wastes of Aldershot, and so forth.
  • Save where the broad Eadhamite Portsmouth Road, thickly dotted with
  • rushing shapes, followed the course of the old railway, the gorge of the
  • wey was choked with thickets.
  • The whole expanse of the Downs escarpment, so far as the grey haze
  • permitted him to see, was set with wind-wheels to which the largest of
  • the city was but a younger brother. They stirred with a stately motion
  • before the south-west wind. And here and there were patches dotted with
  • the sheep of the British Food Trust, and here and there a mounted
  • shepherd made a spot of black. Then rushing under the stern of the
  • monoplane came the Wealden Heights, the line of Hindhead, Pitch Hill, and
  • Leith Hill, with a second row of wind-wheels that seemed striving to rob
  • the downland whirlers of their share of breeze. The purple heather was
  • speckled with yellow gorse, and on the further side a drove of black oxen
  • stampeded before a couple of mounted men. Swiftly these swept behind, and
  • dwindled and lost colour, and became scarce moving specks that were
  • swallowed up in haze.
  • And when these had vanished in the distance Graham heard a peewit
  • wailing close at hand. He perceived he was now above the South Downs, and
  • staring over his shoulder saw the battlements of Portsmouth Landing Stage
  • towering over the ridge of Portsdown Hill. In another moment there came
  • into sight a spread of shipping like floating cities, the little white
  • cliffs of the Needles dwarfed and sunlit, and the grey and glittering
  • waters of the narrow sea. They seemed to leap the Solent in a moment, and
  • in a few seconds the Isle of Wight was running past, and then beneath him
  • spread a wider and wider extent of sea, here purple with the shadow of a
  • cloud, here grey, here a burnished mirror, and here a spread of cloudy
  • greenish blue. The Isle of Wight grew smaller and smaller. In a few more
  • minutes a strip of grey haze detached itself from other strips that were
  • clouds, descended out of the sky and became a coast-line--sunlit and
  • pleasant--the coast of northern France. It rose, it took colour, became
  • definite and detailed, and the counterpart of the Downland of England was
  • speeding by below.
  • In a little time, as it seemed, Paris came above the horizon, and hung
  • there for a space, and sank out of sight again as the monoplane circled
  • about to the north. But he perceived the Eiffel Tower still standing, and
  • beside it a huge dome surmounted by a pin-point Colossus. And he
  • perceived, too, though he did not understand it at the time, a slanting
  • drift of smoke. The aeronaut said something about "trouble in the
  • under-ways," that Graham did not heed. But he marked the minarets and
  • towers and slender masses that streamed skyward above the city
  • wind-vanes, and knew that in the matter of grace at least Paris still
  • kept in front of her larger rival. And even as he looked a pale blue
  • shape ascended very swiftly from the city like a dead leaf driving up
  • before a gale. It curved round and soared towards them, growing rapidly
  • larger and larger. The aeronaut was saying something. "What?" said
  • Graham, loth to take his eyes from this. "London aeroplane, Sire," bawled
  • the aeronaut, pointing.
  • They rose and curved about northward as it drew nearer. Nearer it came
  • and nearer, larger and larger. The throb, throb, throb--beat, of the
  • monoplane's flight, that had seemed so potent, and so swift, suddenly
  • appeared slow by comparison with this tremendous rush. How great the
  • monster seemed, how swift and steady! It passed quite closely beneath
  • them, driving along silently, a vast spread of wire-netted translucent
  • wings, a thing alive. Graham had a momentary glimpse of the rows and rows
  • of wrapped-up passengers, slung in their little cradles behind
  • wind-screens, of a white-clothed engineer crawling against the gale along
  • a ladder way, of spouting engines beating together, of the whirling wind
  • screw, and of a wide waste of wing. He exulted in the sight. And in an
  • instant the thing had passed.
  • It rose slightly and their own little wings swayed in the rush of its
  • flight. It fell and grew smaller. Scarcely had they moved, as it seemed,
  • before it was again only a flat blue thing that dwindled in the sky. This
  • was the aeroplane that went to and fro between London and Paris. In fair
  • weather and in peaceful times it came and went four times a day.
  • They beat across the Channel, slowly as it seemed now to Graham's
  • enlarged ideas, and Beachy Head rose greyly to the left of them.
  • "Land," called the aeronaut, his voice small against the whistling of
  • the air over the wind-screen.
  • "Not yet," bawled Graham, laughing. "Not land yet. I want to learn more
  • of this machine."
  • "I meant--" said the aeronaut.
  • "I want to learn more of this machine," repeated Graham.
  • "I'm coming to you," he said, and had flung himself free of his chair and
  • taken a step along the guarded rail between them. He stopped for a
  • moment, and his colour changed and his hands tightened. Another step and
  • he was clinging close to the aeronaut. He felt a weight on his shoulder,
  • the pressure of the air. His hat was a whirling speck behind. The wind
  • came in gusts over his wind-screen and blew his hair in streamers past
  • his cheek. The aeronaut made some hasty adjustments for the shifting of
  • the centres of gravity and pressure.
  • "I want to have these things explained," said Graham. "What do you do
  • when you move that engine forward?"
  • The aeronaut hesitated. Then he answered, "They are complex, Sire."
  • "I don't mind," shouted Graham. "I don't mind."
  • There was a moment's pause. "Aeronautics is the secret--the privilege--"
  • "I know. But I'm the Master, and I mean to know." He laughed, full of
  • this novel realisation of power that was his gift from the upper air.
  • The monoplane curved about, and the keen fresh wind cut across Graham's
  • face and his garment lugged at his body as the stem pointed round to the
  • west. The two men looked into each other's eyes.
  • "Sire, there are rules--"
  • "Not where I am concerned," said Graham, "You seem to forget."
  • The aeronaut scrutinised his face "No," he said. "I do not forget, Sire.
  • But in all the earth--no man who is not a sworn aeronaut--has ever a
  • chance. They come as passengers--"
  • "I have heard something of the sort. But I'm not going to argue these
  • points. Do you know why I have slept two hundred years? To fly!"
  • "Sire," said the aeronaut, "the rules--if I break the rules--"
  • Graham waved the penalties aside.
  • "Then if you will watch me--"
  • "No," said Graham, swaying and gripping tight as the machine lifted its
  • nose again for an ascent. "That's not my game. I want to do it myself.
  • Do it myself if I smash for it! No! I will. See I am going to clamber by
  • this--to come and share your seat. Steady! I mean to fly of my own
  • accord if I smash at the end of it. I will have something to pay for my
  • sleep. Of all other things--. In my past it was my dream to fly.
  • Now--keep your balance."
  • "A dozen spies are watching me, Sire!"
  • Graham's temper was at end. Perhaps he chose it should be. He swore.
  • He swung himself round the intervening mass of levers and the
  • monoplane swayed.
  • "Am I Master of the earth?" he said. "Or is your Society? Now. Take your
  • hands off those levers, and hold my wrists. Yes--so. And now, how do we
  • turn her nose down to the glide?"
  • "Sire," said the aeronaut.
  • "What is it?"
  • "You will protect me?"
  • "Lord! Yes! If I have to burn London. Now!"
  • And with that promise Graham bought his first lesson in aerial
  • navigation. "It's clearly to your advantage, this journey," he said with
  • a loud laugh--for the air was like strong wine--"to teach me quickly and
  • well. Do I pull this? Ah! So! Hullo!"
  • "Back, Sire! Back!"
  • "Back--right. One--two--three--good God! Ah! Up she goes! But this
  • is living!"
  • And now the machine began to dance the strangest figures in the air. Now
  • it would sweep round a spiral of scarcely a hundred yards diameter, now
  • rush up into the air and swoop down again, steeply, swiftly, falling like
  • a hawk, to recover in a rushing loop that swept it high again. In one of
  • these descents it seemed driving straight at the drifting park of
  • balloons in the southeast, and only curved about and cleared them by a
  • sudden recovery of dexterity. The extraordinary swiftness and smoothness
  • of the motion, the extraordinary effect of the rarefied air upon his
  • constitution, threw Graham into a careless fury.
  • But at last a queer incident came to sober him, to send him flying down
  • once more to the crowded life below with all its dark insoluble riddles.
  • As he swooped, came a tap and something flying past, and a drop like a
  • drop of rain. Then as he went on down he saw something like a white rag
  • whirling down in his wake. "What was that?" he asked. "I did not see."
  • The aeronaut glanced, and then clutched at the lever to recover, for they
  • were sweeping down. When the monoplane was rising again he drew a deep
  • breath and replied, "That," and he indicated the white thing still
  • fluttering down, "was a swan."
  • "I never saw it," said Graham.
  • The aeronaut made no answer, and Graham saw little drops upon his
  • forehead.
  • They drove horizontally while Graham clambered back to the passenger's
  • place out of the lash of the wind. And then came a swift rush down, with
  • the wind-screw whirling to check their fall, and the flying stage growing
  • broad and dark before them. The sun, sinking over the chalk hills in the
  • west, fell with them, and left the sky a blaze of gold.
  • Soon men could be seen as little specks. He heard a noise coming up to
  • meet him, a noise like the sound of waves upon a pebbly beach, and saw
  • that the roofs about the flying stage were dense with his people
  • rejoicing over his safe return. A black mass was crushed together under
  • the stage, a darkness stippled with innumerable faces, and quivering with
  • the minute oscillation of waved white handkerchiefs and waving hands.
  • CHAPTER XVII
  • THREE DAYS
  • Lincoln awaited Graham in an apartment beneath the flying stages. He
  • seemed curious to learn all that had happened, pleased to hear of the
  • extraordinary delight and interest which Graham took in flying. Graham
  • was in a mood of enthusiasm. "I must learn to fly," he cried. "I must
  • master that. I pity all poor souls who have died without this
  • opportunity. The sweet swift air! It is the most wonderful experience in
  • the world."
  • "You will find our new times full of wonderful experiences," said
  • Lincoln. "I do not know what you will care to do now. We have music that
  • may seem novel."
  • "For the present," said Graham, "flying holds me. Let me learn more of
  • that. Your aeronaut was saying there is some trades union objection to
  • one's learning."
  • "There is, I believe," said Lincoln. "But for you--! If you would like to
  • occupy yourself with that, we can make you a sworn aeronaut to-morrow."
  • Graham expressed his wishes vividly and talked of his sensations for
  • a while. "And as for affairs," he asked abruptly. "How are things
  • going on?"
  • Lincoln waved affairs aside. "Ostrog will tell you that to-morrow,"
  • he said. "Everything is settling down. The Revolution accomplishes
  • itself all over the world. Friction is inevitable here and there, of
  • course; but your rule is assured. You may rest secure with things in
  • Ostrog's hands."
  • "Would it be possible for me to be made a sworn aeronaut, as you call it,
  • forthwith--before I sleep?" said Graham, pacing. "Then I could be at it
  • the very first thing to-morrow again...."
  • "It would be possible," said Lincoln thoughtfully. "Quite possible.
  • Indeed, it shall be done." He laughed. "I came prepared to suggest
  • amusements, but you have found one for yourself. I will telephone to the
  • aeronautical offices from here and we will return to your apartments in
  • the Wind-Vane Control. By the time you have dined the aeronauts will be
  • able to come. You don't think that after you have dined you might
  • prefer--?" He paused.
  • "Yes," said Graham.
  • "We had prepared a show of dancers--they have been brought from the
  • Capri theatre."
  • "I hate ballets," said Graham, shortly. "Always did. That other--. That's
  • not what I want to see. We had dancers in the old days. For the matter of
  • that, they had them in ancient Egypt. But flying--"
  • "True," said Lincoln. "Though our dancers--"
  • "They can afford to wait," said Graham; "they can afford to wait. I know.
  • I'm not a Latin. There's questions I want to ask some expert--about your
  • machinery. I'm keen. I want no distractions."
  • "You have the world to choose from," said Lincoln; "whatever you want
  • is yours."
  • Asano appeared, and under the escort of a strong guard they returned
  • through the city streets to Graham's apartments. Far larger crowds had
  • assembled to witness his return than his departure had gathered, and
  • the shouts and cheering of these masses of people sometimes drowned
  • Lincoln's answers to the endless questions Graham's aerial journey had
  • suggested. At first Graham had acknowledged the cheering and cries of
  • the crowd by bows and gestures, but Lincoln warned him that such a
  • recognition would be considered incorrect behaviour. Graham, already a
  • little wearied by rhythmic civilities, ignored his subjects for the
  • remainder of his public progress.
  • Directly they arrived at his apartments Asano departed in search of
  • kinematographic renderings of machinery in motion, and Lincoln despatched
  • Graham's commands for models of machines and small machines to illustrate
  • the various mechanical advances of the last two centuries. The little
  • group of appliances for telegraphic communication attracted the Master so
  • strongly that his delightfully prepared dinner, served by a number of
  • charmingly dexterous girls, waited for a space. The habit of smoking had
  • almost ceased from the face of the earth, but when he expressed a wish
  • for that indulgence, enquiries were made and some excellent cigars were
  • discovered in Florida, and sent to him by pneumatic despatch while the
  • dinner was still in progress. Afterwards came the aeronauts, and a feast
  • of ingenious wonders in the hands of a latter-day engineer. For the time,
  • at any rate, the neat dexterity of counting and numbering machines,
  • building machines, spinning engines, patent doorways, explosive motors,
  • grain and water elevators, slaughter-house machines and harvesting
  • appliances, was more fascinating to Graham than any bayadère. "We were
  • savages," was his refrain, "we were savages. We were in the stone
  • age--compared with this.... And what else have you?"
  • There came also practical psychologists with some very interesting
  • developments in the art of hypnotism. The names of Milne Bramwell,
  • Fechner, Liebault, William James, Myers and Gurney, he found, bore a
  • value now that would have astonished their contemporaries. Several
  • practical applications of psychology were now in general use; it had
  • largely superseded drugs, antiseptics and anesthetics in medicine; was
  • employed by almost all who had any need of mental concentration. A real
  • enlargement of human faculty seemed to have been effected in this
  • direction. The feats of "calculating boys," the wonders, as Graham had
  • been wont to regard them, of mesmerisers, were now within the range of
  • anyone who could afford the services of a skilled hypnotist. Long ago
  • the old examination methods in education had been destroyed by these
  • expedients. Instead of years of study, candidates had substituted a few
  • weeks of trances, and during the trances expert coaches had simply to
  • repeat all the points necessary for adequate answering, adding a
  • suggestion of the post-hypnotic recollection of these points. In process
  • mathematics particularly, this aid had been of singular service, and it
  • was now invariably invoked by such players of chess and games of manual
  • dexterity as were still to be found. In fact, all operations conducted
  • under finite rules, of a quasi-mechanical sort that is, were now
  • systematically relieved from the wanderings of imagination and emotion,
  • and brought to an unexampled pitch of accuracy. Little children of the
  • labouring classes, so soon as they were of sufficient age to be
  • hypnotised, were thus converted into beautifully punctual and
  • trustworthy machine minders, and released forthwith from the long, long
  • thoughts of youth. Aeronautical pupils, who gave way to giddiness,
  • could be relieved from their imaginary terrors. In every street were
  • hypnotists ready to print permanent memories upon the mind. If anyone
  • desired to remember a name, a series of numbers, a song or a speech, it
  • could be done by this method, and conversely memories could be effaced,
  • habits removed, and desires eradicated--a sort of psychic surgery was,
  • in fact, in general use. Indignities, humbling experiences, were thus
  • forgotten, widows would obliterate their previous husbands, angry lovers
  • release themselves from their slavery. To graft desires, however, was
  • still impossible, and the facts of thought transference were yet
  • unsystematised. The psychologists illustrated their expositions with
  • some astounding experiments in mnemonics made through the agency of a
  • troupe of pale-faced children in blue.
  • Graham, like most of the people of his former time, distrusted the
  • hypnotist, or he might then and there have eased his mind of many painful
  • preoccupations. But in spite of Lincoln's assurances he held to the old
  • theory that to be hypnotised was in some way the surrender of his
  • personality, the abdication of his will. At the banquet of wonderful
  • experiences that was beginning, he wanted very keenly to remain
  • absolutely himself.
  • The next day, and another day, and yet another day passed in such
  • interests as these. Each day Graham spent many hours in the glorious
  • entertainment of flying. On the third, he soared across middle France,
  • and within sight of the snow-clad Alps. These vigorous exercises gave him
  • restful sleep; he recovered almost wholly from the spiritless anemia of
  • his first awakening. And whenever he was not in the air, and awake,
  • Lincoln was assiduous in the cause of his amusement; all that was novel
  • and curious in contemporary invention was brought to him, until at last
  • his appetite for novelty was well-nigh glutted. One might fill a dozen
  • inconsecutive volumes with the strange things they exhibited. Each
  • afternoon he held his court for an hour or so. He found his interest in
  • his contemporaries becoming personal and intimate. At first he had been
  • alert chiefly for unfamiliarity and peculiarity; any foppishness in their
  • dress, any discordance with his preconceptions of nobility in their
  • status and manners had jarred upon him, and it was remarkable to him how
  • soon that strangeness and the faint hostility that arose from it,
  • disappeared; how soon he came to appreciate the true perspective of his
  • position, and see the old Victorian days remote and quaint. He found
  • himself particularly amused by the red-haired daughter of the Manager of
  • the European Piggeries. On the second day after dinner he made the
  • acquaintance of a latter-day dancing girl, and found her an astonishing
  • artist. And after that, more hypnotic wonders. On the third day Lincoln
  • was moved to suggest that the Master should repair to a Pleasure City,
  • but this Graham declined, nor would he accept the services of the
  • hypnotists in his aeronautical experiments. The link of locality held him
  • to London; he found a delight in topographical identifications that he
  • would have missed abroad. "Here--or a hundred feet below here," he could
  • say, "I used to eat my midday cutlets during my London University days.
  • Underneath here was Waterloo and the tiresome hunt for confusing trains.
  • Often have I stood waiting down there, bag in hand, and stared up into
  • the sky above the forest of signals, little thinking I should walk some
  • day a hundred yards in the air. And now in that very sky that was once a
  • grey smoke canopy, I circle in a monoplane."
  • During those three days Graham was so occupied with these distractions
  • that the vast political movements in progress outside his quarters had
  • but a small share of his attention. Those about him told him little.
  • Daily came Ostrog, the Boss, his Grand Vizier, his mayor of the palace,
  • to report in vague terms the steady establishment of his rule; "a little
  • trouble" soon to be settled in this city, "a slight disturbance" in that.
  • The song of the social revolt came to him no more; he never learned that
  • it had been forbidden in the municipal limits; and all the great emotions
  • of the crow's nest slumbered in his mind.
  • But on the second and third of the three days he found himself, in spite
  • of his interest in the daughter of the Pig Manager, or it may be by
  • reason of the thoughts her conversation suggested, remembering the girl
  • Helen Wotton, who had spoken to him so oddly at the Wind-Vane Keeper's
  • gathering. The impression, she had made was a deep one, albeit the
  • incessant surprise of novel circumstances had kept him from brooding upon
  • it for a space. But now her memory was coming to its own. He wondered
  • what she had meant by those broken half-forgotten sentences; the picture
  • of her eyes and the earnest passion of her face became more vivid as his
  • mechanical interests faded. Her slender beauty came compellingly between
  • him and certain immediate temptations of ignoble passion. But he did not
  • see her again until three full days were past.
  • CHAPTER XVIII
  • GRAHAM REMEMBERS
  • She came upon him at last in a little gallery that ran from the Wind-Vane
  • Offices toward his state apartments. The gallery was long and narrow,
  • with a series of recesses, each with an arched fenestration that looked
  • upon a court of palms. He came upon her suddenly in one of these
  • recesses. She was seated. She turned her head at the sound of his
  • footsteps and started at the sight of him. Every touch of colour vanished
  • from her face. She rose instantly, made a step toward him as if to
  • address him, and hesitated. He stopped and stood still, expectant. Then
  • he perceived that a nervous tumult silenced her, perceived, too, that she
  • must have sought speech with him to be waiting for him in this place.
  • He felt a regal impulse to assist her. "I have wanted to see you," he
  • said. "A few days ago you wanted to tell me something--you wanted to tell
  • me of the people. What was it you had to tell me?"
  • She looked at him with troubled eyes.
  • "You said the people were unhappy?"
  • For a moment she was silent still.
  • "It must have seemed strange to you," she said abruptly.
  • "It did. And yet--"
  • "It was an impulse."
  • "Well?"
  • "That is all."
  • She looked at him with a face of hesitation. She spoke with an effort.
  • "You forget," she said, drawing a deep breath.
  • "What?"
  • "The people--"
  • "Do you mean--?"
  • "You forget the people."
  • He looked interrogative.
  • "Yes. I know you are surprised. For you do not understand what you are.
  • You do not know the things that are happening."
  • "Well?"
  • "You do not understand."
  • "Not clearly, perhaps. But--tell me."
  • She turned to him with sudden resolution. "It is so hard to explain. I
  • have meant to, I have wanted to. And now--I cannot. I am not ready with
  • words. But about you--there is something. It is wonder. Your sleep--your
  • awakening. These things are miracles. To me at least--and to all the
  • common people. You who lived and suffered and died, you who were a
  • common citizen, wake again, live again, to find yourself Master almost
  • of the earth."
  • "Master of the earth," he said. "So they tell me. But try and imagine how
  • little I know of it."
  • "Cities--Trusts--the Labour Department--"
  • "Principalities, powers, dominions--the power and the glory. Yes, I have
  • heard them shout. I know. I am Master. King, if you wish. With Ostrog,
  • the Boss--"
  • He paused.
  • She turned upon him and surveyed his face with a curious scrutiny.
  • "Well?"
  • He smiled. "To take the responsibility."
  • "That is what we have begun to fear." For a moment she said no more.
  • "No," she said slowly. "_You_ will take the responsibility. You will take
  • the responsibility. The people look to you."
  • She spoke softly. "Listen! For at least half the years of your sleep--in
  • every generation--multitudes of people, in every generation greater
  • multitudes of people, have prayed that you might awake--_prayed_."
  • Graham moved to speak and did not.
  • She hesitated, and a faint colour crept back to her cheek. "Do you know
  • that you have been to myriads--King Arthur, Barbarossa--the King who
  • would come in his own good time and put the world right for them?"
  • "I suppose the imagination of the people--"
  • "Have you not heard our proverb, 'When the Sleeper wakes'? While you lay
  • insensible and motionless there--thousands came. Thousands. Every first
  • of the month you lay in state with a white robe upon you and the people
  • filed by you. When I was a little girl I saw you like that, with your
  • face white and calm."
  • She turned her face from him and looked steadfastly at the painted
  • wall before her. Her voice fell. "When I was a little girl I used to
  • look at your face.... It seemed to me fixed and waiting, like the
  • patience of God."
  • "That is what we thought of you," she said. "That is how you
  • seemed to us."
  • She turned shining eyes to him, her voice was clear and strong. "In the
  • city, in the earth, a myriad myriad men and women are waiting to see what
  • you will do, full of strange incredible expectations."
  • "Yes?"
  • "Ostrog--no one--can take that responsibility."
  • Graham looked at her in surprise, at her face lit with emotion. She
  • seemed at first to have spoken with an effort, and to have fired herself
  • by speaking.
  • "Do you think," she said, "that you who have lived that little life so
  • far away in the past, you who have fallen into and risen out of this
  • miracle of sleep--do you think that the wonder and reverence and hope of
  • half the world has gathered about you only that you may live another
  • little life?... That you may shift the responsibility to any other man?"
  • "I know how great this kingship of mine is," he said haltingly. "I know
  • how great it seems. But is it real? It is incredible--dreamlike. Is it
  • real, or is it only a great delusion?"
  • "It is real," she said; "if you dare."
  • "After all, like all kingship, my kingship is Belief. It is an illusion
  • in the minds of men."
  • "If you dare!" she said.
  • "But--"
  • "Countless men," she said, "and while it is in their minds--they
  • will obey."
  • "But I know nothing. That is what I had in mind. I know nothing. And
  • these others--the Councillors, Ostrog. They are wiser, cooler, they know
  • so much, every detail. And, indeed, what are these miseries of which you
  • speak? What am I to know? Do you mean--"
  • He stopped blankly.
  • "I am still hardly more than a girl," she said. "But to me the world
  • seems full of wretchedness. The world has altered since your day, altered
  • very strangely. I have prayed that I might see you and tell you these
  • things. The world has changed. As if a canker had seized it--and robbed
  • life of--everything worth having."
  • She turned a flushed face upon him, moving suddenly. "Your days were the
  • days of freedom. Yes--I have thought. I have been made to think, for my
  • life--has not been happy. Men are no longer free--no greater, no better
  • than the men of your time. That is not all. This city--is a prison. Every
  • city now is a prison. Mammon grips the key in his hand. Myriads,
  • countless myriads, toil from the cradle to the grave. Is that right? Is
  • that to be--for ever? Yes, far worse than in your time. All about us,
  • beneath us, sorrow and pain. All the shallow delight of such life as you
  • find about you, is separated by just a little from a life of wretchedness
  • beyond any telling. Yes, the poor know it--they know they suffer. These
  • countless multitudes who faced death for you two nights since--! You owe
  • your life to them."
  • "Yes," said Graham, slowly. "Yes. I owe my life to them."
  • "You come," she said, "from the days when this new tyranny of the cities
  • was scarcely beginning. It is a tyranny--a tyranny. In your days the
  • feudal war lords had gone, and the new lordship of wealth had still to
  • come. Half the men in the world still lived out upon the free
  • countryside. The cities had still to devour them. I have heard the
  • stories out of the old books--there was nobility! Common men led lives of
  • love and faithfulness then--they did a thousand things. And you--you come
  • from that time."
  • "It was not--. But never mind. How is it now--?"
  • "Gain and the Pleasure Cities! Or slavery--unthanked, unhonoured,
  • slavery."
  • "Slavery!" he said.
  • "Slavery."
  • "You don't mean to say that human beings are chattels."
  • "Worse. That is what I want you to know, what I want you to see. I know
  • you do not know. They will keep things from you, they will take you
  • presently to a Pleasure City. But you have noticed men and women and
  • children in pale blue canvas, with thin yellow faces and dull eyes?"
  • "Everywhere."
  • "Speaking a horrible dialect, coarse and weak."
  • "I have heard it."
  • "They are the slaves--your slaves. They are the slaves of the Labour
  • Department you own."
  • "The Labour Department! In some way--that is familiar. Ah! now I
  • remember. I saw it when I was wandering about the city, after the
  • lights returned, great fronts of buildings coloured pale blue. Do you
  • really mean--?"
  • "Yes. How can I explain it to you? Of course the blue uniform struck you.
  • Nearly a third of our people wear it--more assume it now every day. This
  • Labour Department has grown imperceptibly."
  • "What _is_ this Labour Department?" asked Graham.
  • "In the old times, how did you manage with starving people?"
  • "There was the workhouse--which the parishes maintained."
  • "Workhouse! Yes--there was something. In our history lessons. I remember
  • now. The Labour Department ousted the workhouse. It grew--partly--out of
  • something--you, perhaps, may remember it--an emotional religious
  • organisation called the Salvation Army--that became a business company.
  • In the first place it was almost a charity. To save people from workhouse
  • rigours. There had been a great agitation against the workhouse. Now I
  • come to think of it, it was one of the earliest properties your Trustees
  • acquired. They bought the Salvation Army and reconstructed it as this.
  • The idea in the first place was to organise the labour of starving
  • homeless people."
  • "Yes."
  • "Nowadays there are no workhouses, no refuges and charities, nothing but
  • that Department. Its offices are everywhere. That blue is its colour. And
  • any man, woman or child who comes to be hungry and weary and with neither
  • home nor friend nor resort, must go to the Department in the end--or seek
  • some way of death. The Euthanasy is beyond their means--for the poor
  • there is no easy death. And at any hour in the day or night there is
  • food, shelter and a blue uniform for all comers--that is the first
  • condition of the Department's incorporation--and in return for a day's
  • shelter the Department extracts a day's work, and then returns the
  • visitor's proper clothing and sends him or her out again."
  • "Yes?"
  • "Perhaps that does not seem so terrible to you. In your time men starved
  • in your streets. That was bad. But they died--_men_. These people in
  • blue--. The proverb runs: 'Blue canvas once and ever.' The Department
  • trades in their labour, and it has taken care to assure itself of the
  • supply. People come to it starving and helpless--they eat and sleep for a
  • night and day, they work for a day, and at the end of the day they go
  • out again. If they have worked well they have a penny or so--enough for a
  • theatre or a cheap dancing place, or a kinematograph story, or a dinner
  • or a bet. They wander about after that is spent. Begging is prevented by
  • the police of the ways. Besides, no one gives. They come back again the
  • next day or the day after--brought back by the same incapacity that
  • brought them first. At last their proper clothing wears out, or their
  • rags get so shabby that they are ashamed. Then they must work for months
  • to get fresh. If they want fresh. A great number of children are born
  • under the Department's care. The mother owes them a month thereafter--the
  • children they cherish and educate until they are fourteen, and they pay
  • two years' service. You may be sure these children are educated for the
  • blue canvas. And so it is the Department works."
  • "And none are destitute in the city?"
  • "None. They are either in blue canvas or in prison. We have abolished
  • destitution. It is engraved upon the Department's checks."
  • "If they will not work?"
  • "Most people will work at that pitch, and the Department has powers.
  • There are stages of unpleasantness in the work--stoppage of food--and a
  • man or woman who has refused to work once is known by a thumb-marking
  • system in the Department's offices all over the world. Besides, who can
  • leave the city poor? To go to Paris costs two Lions. And for
  • insubordination there are the prisons--dark and miserable--out of sight
  • below. There are prisons now for many things."
  • "And a third of the people wear this blue canvas?"
  • "More than a third. Toilers, living without pride or delight or hope,
  • with the stories of Pleasure Cities ringing in their ears, mocking their
  • shameful lives, their privations and hardships. Too poor even for the
  • Euthanasy, the rich man's refuge from life. Dumb, crippled millions,
  • countless millions, all the world about, ignorant of anything but
  • limitations and unsatisfied desires. They are born, they are thwarted and
  • they die. That is the state to which we have come."
  • For a space Graham sat downcast.
  • "But there has been a revolution," he said. "All these things will be
  • changed. Ostrog--"
  • "That is our hope. That is the hope of the world. But Ostrog will not do
  • it. He is a politician. To him it seems things must be like this. He
  • does not mind. He takes it for granted. All the rich, all the
  • influential, all who are happy, come at last to take these miseries for
  • granted. They use the people in their politics, they live in ease by
  • their degradation. But you--you who come from a happier age--it is to
  • you the people look. To you."
  • He looked at her face. Her eyes were bright with unshed tears. He felt
  • a rush of emotion. For a moment he forgot this city, he forgot the
  • race, and all those vague remote voices, in the immediate humanity of
  • her beauty.
  • "But what am I to do?" he said with his eyes upon her.
  • "Rule," she answered, bending towards him and speaking in a low tone.
  • "Rule the world as it has never been ruled, for the good and happiness of
  • men. For you might rule it--you could rule it.
  • "The people are stirring. All over the world the people are stirring. It
  • wants but a word--but a word from you--to bring them all together. Even
  • the middle sort of people are restless--unhappy.
  • "They are not telling you the things that are happening. The people will
  • not go back to their drudgery--they refuse to be disarmed. Ostrog has
  • awakened something greater than he dreamt of--he has awakened hopes."
  • His heart was beating fast. He tried to seem judicial, to weigh
  • considerations.
  • "They only want their leader," she said.
  • "And then?"
  • "You could do what you would;--the world is yours."
  • He sat, no longer regarding her. Presently he spoke. "The old dreams, and
  • the thing I have dreamt, liberty, happiness. Are they dreams? Could one
  • man--_one man_--?" His voice sank and ceased.
  • "Not one man, but all men--give them only a leader to speak the desire of
  • their hearts."
  • He shook his head, and for a time there was silence.
  • He looked up suddenly, and their eyes met. "I have not your faith," he
  • said, "I have not your youth. I am here with power that mocks me. No--let
  • me speak. I want to do--not right--I have not the strength for that--but
  • something rather right than wrong. It will bring no millennium, but I am
  • resolved now, that I will rule. What you have said has awakened me... You
  • are right. Ostrog must know his place. And I will learn--.... One thing I
  • promise you. This Labour slavery shall end."
  • "And you will rule?"
  • "Yes. Provided--. There is one thing."
  • "Yes?"
  • "That you will help me."
  • "_I_--a girl!"
  • "Yes. Does it not occur to you I am absolutely alone?"
  • She started and for an instant her eyes had pity. "Need you ask whether I
  • will help you?" she said.
  • There came a tense silence, and then the beating of a clock striking the
  • hour. Graham rose.
  • "Even now," he said, "Ostrog will be waiting." He hesitated, facing her.
  • "When I have asked him certain questions--. There is much I do not know.
  • It may be, that I will go to see with my own eyes the things of which you
  • have spoken. And when I return--?"
  • "I shall know of your going and coming. I will wait for you here again."
  • They regarded one another steadfastly, questioningly, and then he turned
  • from her towards the Wind-Vane office.
  • CHAPTER XIX
  • OSTROG'S POINT OF VIEW
  • Graham found Ostrog waiting to give a formal account of his day's
  • stewardship. On previous occasions he had passed over this ceremony as
  • speedily as possible, in order to resume his aerial experiences, but now
  • he began to ask quick short questions. He was very anxious to take up his
  • empire forthwith. Ostrog brought flattering reports of the development of
  • affairs abroad. In Paris and Berlin, Graham perceived that he was saying,
  • there had been trouble, not organised resistance indeed, but
  • insubordinate proceedings. "After all these years," said Ostrog, when
  • Graham pressed enquiries; "the Commune has lifted its head again. That is
  • the real nature of the struggle, to be explicit." But order had been
  • restored in these cities. Graham, the more deliberately judicial for the
  • stirring emotions he felt, asked if there had been any fighting. "A
  • little," said Ostrog. "In one quarter only. But the Senegalese division
  • of our African agricultural police--the Consolidated African Companies
  • have a very well drilled police--was ready, and so were the aeroplanes.
  • We expected a little trouble in the continental cities, and in America.
  • But things are very quiet in America. They are satisfied with the
  • overthrow of the Council. For the time."
  • "Why should you expect trouble?" asked Graham abruptly.
  • "There is a lot of discontent--social discontent."
  • "The Labour Department?"
  • "You are learning," said Ostrog with a touch of surprise. "Yes. It is
  • chiefly the discontent with the Labour Department. It was that discontent
  • supplied the motive force of this overthrow--that and your awakening."
  • "Yes?"
  • Ostrog smiled. He became explicit. "We had to stir up their discontent,
  • we had to revive the old ideals of universal happiness--all men
  • equal--all men happy--no luxury that everyone may not share--ideas that
  • have slumbered for two hundred years. You know that? We had to revive
  • these ideals, impossible as they are--in order to overthrow the Council.
  • And now--"
  • "Well?"
  • "Our revolution is accomplished, and the Council is overthrown, and
  • people whom we have stirred up--remain surging. There was scarcely enough
  • fighting.... We made promises, of course. It is extraordinary how
  • violently and rapidly this vague out-of-date humanitarianism has revived
  • and spread. We who sowed the seed even, have been astonished. In Paris,
  • as I say--we have had to call in a little external help."
  • "And here?"
  • "There is trouble. Multitudes will not go back to work. There is a
  • general strike. Half the factories are empty and the people are swarming
  • in the ways. They are talking of a Commune. Men in silk and satin have
  • been insulted in the streets. The blue canvas is expecting all sorts of
  • things from you.... Of course there is no need for you to trouble. We are
  • setting the Babble Machines to work with counter suggestions in the
  • cause of law and order. We must keep the grip tight; that is all."
  • Graham thought. He perceived a way of asserting himself. But he spoke
  • with restraint.
  • "Even to the pitch of bringing a negro police," he said.
  • "They are useful," said Ostrog. "They are fine loyal brutes, with no wash
  • of ideas in their heads--such as our rabble has. The Council should have
  • had them as police of the ways, and things might have been different. Of
  • course, there is nothing to fear except rioting and wreckage. You can
  • manage your own wings now, and you can soar away to Capri if there is any
  • smoke or fuss. We have the pull of all the great things; the aeronauts
  • are privileged and rich, the closest trades union in the world, and so
  • are the engineers of the wind-vanes. We have the air, and the mastery of
  • the air is the mastery of the earth. No one of any ability is organising
  • against us. They have no leaders--only the sectional leaders of the
  • secret society we organised before your very opportune awakening. Mere
  • busybodies and sentimentalists they are and bitterly jealous of each
  • other. None of them is man enough for a central figure. The only trouble
  • will be a disorganised upheaval. To be frank--that may happen. But it
  • won't interrupt your aeronautics. The days when the People could make
  • revolutions are past."
  • "I suppose they are," said Graham. "I suppose they are." He mused. "This
  • world of yours has been full of surprises to me. In the old days we
  • dreamt of a wonderful democratic life, of a time when all men would be
  • equal and happy."
  • Ostrog looked at him steadfastly. "The day of democracy is past," he
  • said. "Past for ever. That day began with the bowmen of Creçy, it ended
  • when marching infantry, when common men in masses ceased to win the
  • battles of the world, when costly cannon, great ironclads, and strategic
  • railways became the means of power. To-day is the day of wealth. Wealth
  • now is power as it never was power before--it commands earth and sea and
  • sky. All power is for those who can handle wealth. On your behalf.... You
  • must accept facts, and these are facts. The world for the Crowd! The
  • Crowd as Ruler! Even in your days that creed had been tried and
  • condemned. To-day it has only one believer--a multiplex, silly one--the
  • man in the Crowd."
  • Graham did not answer immediately. He stood lost in sombre
  • preoccupations.
  • "No," said Ostrog. "The day of the common man is past. On the open
  • countryside one man is as good as another, or nearly as good. The earlier
  • aristocracy had a precarious tenure of strength and audacity. They were
  • tempered--tempered. There were insurrections, duels, riots. The first
  • real aristocracy, the first permanent aristocracy, came in with castles
  • and armour, and vanished before the musket and bow. But this is the
  • second aristocracy. The real one. Those days of gunpowder and democracy
  • were only an eddy in the stream. The common man now is a helpless unit.
  • In these days we have this great machine of the city, and an organisation
  • complex beyond his understanding."
  • "Yet," said Graham, "there is something resists, something you are
  • holding down--something that stirs and presses."
  • "You will see," said Ostrog, with a forced smile that would brush these
  • difficult questions aside. "I have not roused the force to destroy
  • myself--trust me."
  • "I wonder," said Graham.
  • Ostrog stared.
  • "_Must_ the world go this way?" said Graham with his emotions at the
  • speaking point. "Must it indeed go in this way? Have all our hopes
  • been vain?"
  • "What do you mean?" said Ostrog. "Hopes?"
  • "I come from a democratic age. And I find an aristocratic tyranny!"
  • "Well,--but you are the chief tyrant."
  • Graham shook his head.
  • "Well," said Ostrog, "take the general question. It is the way that
  • change has always travelled. Aristocracy, the prevalence of the best--the
  • suffering and extinction of the unfit, and so to better things."
  • "But aristocracy! those people I met--"
  • "Oh! not _those_!" said Ostrog. "But for the most part they go to their
  • death. Vice and pleasure! They have no children. That sort of stuff will
  • die out. If the world keeps to one road, that is, if there is no turning
  • back. An easy road to excess, convenient Euthanasia for the pleasure
  • seekers singed in the flame, that is the way to improve the race!"
  • "Pleasant extinction," said Graham. "Yet--." He thought for an instant.
  • "There is that other thing--the Crowd, the great mass of poor men. Will
  • that die out? That will not die out. And it suffers, its suffering is a
  • force that even you--"
  • Ostrog moved impatiently, and when he spoke, he spoke rather less evenly
  • than before.
  • "Don't trouble about these things," he said. "Everything will be
  • settled in a few days now. The Crowd is a huge foolish beast. What if
  • it does not die out? Even if it does not die, it can still be tamed and
  • driven. I have no sympathy with servile men. You heard those people
  • shouting and singing two nights ago. They were _taught_ that song. If
  • you had taken any man there in cold blood and asked why he shouted, he
  • could not have told you. They think they are shouting for you, that
  • they are loyal and devoted to you. Just then they were ready to
  • slaughter the Council. To-day--they are already murmuring against those
  • who have overthrown the Council."
  • "No, no," said Graham. "They shouted because their lives were dreary,
  • without joy or pride, and because in me--in me--they hoped."
  • "And what was their hope? What is their hope? What right have they to
  • hope? They work ill and they want the reward of those who work well. The
  • hope of mankind--what is it? That some day the Over-man may come, that
  • some day the inferior, the weak and the bestial may be subdued or
  • eliminated. Subdued if not eliminated. The world is no place for the bad,
  • the stupid, the enervated. Their duty--it's a fine duty too!--is to die.
  • The death of the failure! That is the path by which the beast rose to
  • manhood, by which man goes on to higher things."
  • Ostrog took a pace, seemed to think, and turned on Graham. "I can imagine
  • how this great world state of ours seems to a Victorian Englishman. You
  • regret all the old forms of representative government--their spectres
  • still haunt the world, the voting councils, and parliaments and all that
  • eighteenth century tomfoolery. You feel moved against our Pleasure
  • Cities. I might have thought of that,--had I not been busy. But you will
  • learn better. The people are mad with envy--they would be in sympathy
  • with you. Even in the streets now, they clamour to destroy the Pleasure
  • Cities. But the Pleasure Cities are the excretory organs of the State,
  • attractive places that year after year draw together all that is weak and
  • vicious, all that is lascivious and lazy, all the easy roguery of the
  • world, to a graceful destruction. They go there, they have their time,
  • they die childless, all the pretty silly lascivious women die childless,
  • and mankind is the better. If the people were sane they would not envy
  • the rich their way of death. And you would emancipate the silly brainless
  • workers that we have enslaved, and try to make their lives easy and
  • pleasant again. Just as they have sunk to what they are fit for." He
  • smiled a smile that irritated Graham oddly. "You will learn better. I
  • know those ideas; in my boyhood I read your Shelley and dreamt of
  • Liberty. There is no liberty, save wisdom and self-control. Liberty is
  • within--not without. It is each man's own affair. Suppose--which is
  • impossible--that these swarming yelping fools in blue get the upper hand
  • of us, what then? They will only fall to other masters. So long as there
  • are sheep Nature will insist on beasts of prey. It would mean but a few
  • hundred years' delay. The coming of the aristocrat is fatal and assured.
  • The end will be the Over-man--for all the mad protests of humanity. Let
  • them revolt, let them win and kill me and my like. Others will
  • arise--other masters. The end will be the same."
  • "I wonder," said Graham doggedly.
  • For a moment he stood downcast.
  • "But I must see these things for myself," he said, suddenly assuming a
  • tone of confident mastery. "Only by seeing can I understand. I must
  • learn. That is what I want to tell you, Ostrog. I do not want to be King
  • in a Pleasure City; that is not my pleasure. I have spent enough time
  • with aeronautics--and those other things. I must learn how people live
  • now, how the common life has developed. Then I shall understand these
  • things better. I must learn how common people live--the labour people
  • more especially--how they work, marry, bear children, die--"
  • "You get that from our realistic novelists," suggested Ostrog, suddenly
  • preoccupied.
  • "I want reality," said Graham.
  • "There are difficulties," said Ostrog, and thought. "On the whole--"
  • "I did not expect--"
  • "I had thought--. And yet perhaps--. You say you want to go through the
  • ways of the city and see the common people."
  • Suddenly he came to some conclusion. "You would need to go disguised," he
  • said. "The city is intensely excited, and the discovery of your presence
  • among them might create a fearful tumult. Still this wish of yours to go
  • into this city--this idea of yours--. Yes, now I think the thing over, it
  • seems to me not altogether--. It can be contrived. If you would really
  • find an interest in that! You are, of course, Master. You can go soon if
  • you like. A disguise Asano will be able to manage. He would go with you.
  • After all it is not a bad idea of yours."
  • "You will not want to consult me in any matter?" asked Graham suddenly,
  • struck by an odd suspicion.
  • "Oh, dear no! No! I think you may trust affairs to me for a time, at any
  • rate," said Ostrog, smiling. "Even if we differ--"
  • Graham glanced at him sharply.
  • "There is no fighting likely to happen soon?" he asked abruptly.
  • "Certainly not."
  • "I have been thinking about these negroes. I don't believe the people
  • intend any hostility to me, and, after all, I am the Master. I do not
  • want any negroes brought to London. It is an archaic prejudice perhaps,
  • but I have peculiar feelings about Europeans and the subject races. Even
  • about Paris--"
  • Ostrog stood watching him from under his drooping brows. "I am not
  • bringing negroes to London," he said slowly. "But if--"
  • "You are not to bring armed negroes to London, whatever happens," said
  • Graham. "In that matter I am quite decided."
  • Ostrog resolved not to speak, and bowed deferentially.
  • CHAPTER XX
  • IN THE CITY WAYS
  • And that night, unknown and unsuspected, Graham, dressed in the costume
  • of an inferior wind-vane official keeping holiday, and accompanied by
  • Asano in Labour Department canvas, surveyed the city through which he had
  • wandered when it was veiled in darkness. But now he saw it lit and
  • waking, a whirlpool of life. In spite of the surging and swaying of the
  • forces of revolution, in spite of the unusual discontent, the mutterings
  • of the greater struggle of which the first revolt was but the prelude,
  • the myriad streams of commerce still flowed wide and strong. He knew now
  • something of the dimensions and quality of the new age, but he was not
  • prepared for the infinite surprise of the detailed view, for the torrent
  • of colour and vivid impressions that poured past him.
  • This was his first real contact with the people of these latter days. He
  • realised that all that had gone before, saving his glimpses of the public
  • theatres and markets, had had its element of seclusion, had been a
  • movement within the comparatively narrow political quarter, that all his
  • previous experiences had revolved immediately about the question of his
  • own position. But here was the city at the busiest hours of night, the
  • people to a large extent returned to their own immediate interests, the
  • resumption of the real informal life, the common habits of the new time.
  • They emerged at first into a street whose opposite ways were crowded
  • with the blue canvas liveries. This swarm Graham saw was a portion of a
  • procession--it was odd to see a procession parading the city _seated_.
  • They carried banners of coarse black stuff with red letters. "No
  • disarmament," said the banners, for the most part in crudely daubed
  • letters and with variant spelling, and "Why should we disarm?" "No
  • disarming." "No disarming." Banner after banner went by, a stream of
  • banners flowing past, and at last at the end, the song of the revolt and
  • a noisy band of strange instruments. "They all ought to be at work," said
  • Asano. "They have had no food these two days, or they have stolen it."
  • Presently Asano made a detour to avoid the congested crowd that gaped
  • upon the occasional passage of dead bodies from hospital to a mortuary,
  • the gleanings after death's harvest of the first revolt.
  • That night few people were sleeping, everyone was abroad. A vast
  • excitement, perpetual crowds perpetually changing, surrounded Graham; his
  • mind was confused and darkened by an incessant tumult, by the cries and
  • enigmatical fragments of the social struggle that was as yet only
  • beginning. Everywhere festoons and banners of black and strange
  • decorations, intensified the quality of his popularity. Everywhere he
  • caught snatches of that crude thick dialect that served the illiterate
  • class, the class, that is, beyond the reach of phonograph culture, in
  • their commonplace intercourse. Everywhere this trouble of disarmament was
  • in the air, with a quality of immediate stress of which he had no inkling
  • during his seclusion in the Wind-Vane quarter. He perceived that as soon
  • as he returned he must discuss this with Ostrog, this and the greater
  • issues of which it was the expression, in a far more conclusive way than
  • he had so far done. Perpetually that night, even in the earlier hours of
  • their wanderings about the city, the spirit of unrest and revolt swamped
  • his attention, to the exclusion of countless strange things he might
  • otherwise have observed.
  • This preoccupation made his impressions fragmentary. Yet amidst so much
  • that was strange and vivid, no subject, however personal and insistent,
  • could exert undivided sway. There were spaces when the revolutionary
  • movement passed clean out of his mind, was drawn aside like a curtain
  • from before some startling new aspect of the time. Helen had swayed his
  • mind to this intense earnestness of enquiry, but there came times when
  • she, even, receded beyond his conscious thoughts. At one moment, for
  • example, he found they were traversing the religious quarter, for the
  • easy transit about the city afforded by the moving ways rendered sporadic
  • churches and chapels no longer necessary--and his attention was vividly
  • arrested by the façade of one of the Christian sects.
  • They were travelling seated on one of the swift upper ways, the place
  • leapt upon them at a bend and advanced rapidly towards them. It was
  • covered with inscriptions from top to base, in vivid white and blue, save
  • where a vast and glaring kinematograph transparency presented a realistic
  • New Testament scene, and where a vast festoon of black to show that the
  • popular religion followed the popular politics, hung across the
  • lettering. Graham had already become familiar with the phonotype writing
  • and these inscriptions arrested him, being to his sense for the most part
  • almost incredible blasphemy. Among the less offensive were "Salvation on
  • the First Floor and turn to the Right." "Put your Money on your Maker."
  • "The Sharpest Conversion in London, Expert Operators! Look Slippy!" "What
  • Christ would say to the Sleeper;--Join the Up-to-date Saints!" "Be a
  • Christian--without hindrance to your present Occupation." "All the
  • Brightest Bishops on the Bench to-night and Prices as Usual." "Brisk
  • Blessings for Busy Business Men."
  • "But this is appalling!" said Graham, as that deafening scream of
  • mercantile piety towered above them.
  • "What is appalling?" asked his little officer, apparently seeking vainly
  • for anything unusual in this shrieking enamel.
  • "_This_! Surely the essence of religion is reverence."
  • "Oh _that_!" Asano looked at Graham. "Does it shock you?" he said in the
  • tone of one who makes a discovery. "I suppose it would, of course. I had
  • forgotten. Nowadays the competition for attention is so keen, and people
  • simply haven't the leisure to attend to their souls, you know, as they
  • used to do." He smiled. "In the old days you had quiet Sabbaths and the
  • countryside. Though somewhere I've read of Sunday afternoons that--"
  • "But _that_," said Graham, glancing back at the receding blue and white.
  • "That is surely not the only--"
  • "There are hundreds of different ways. But, of course, if a sect doesn't
  • _tell_ it doesn't pay. Worship has moved with the times. There are high
  • class sects with quieter ways--costly incense and personal attentions
  • and all that. These people are extremely popular and prosperous. They
  • pay several dozen lions for those apartments to the Council--to you, I
  • should say."
  • Graham still felt a difficulty with the coinage, and this mention of a
  • dozen lions brought him abruptly to that matter. In a moment the
  • screaming temples and their swarming touts were forgotten in this new
  • interest. A turn of a phrase suggested, and an answer confirmed the idea
  • that gold and silver were both demonetised, that stamped gold which had
  • begun its reign amidst the merchants of Phoenicia was at last dethroned.
  • The change had been graduated but swift, brought about by an extension of
  • the system of cheques that had even in his previous life already
  • practically superseded gold in all the larger business transactions. The
  • common traffic of the city, the common currency indeed of all the world,
  • was conducted by means of the little brown, green and pink council
  • cheques for small amounts, printed with a blank payee. Asano had several
  • with him, and at the first opportunity he supplied the gaps in his set.
  • They were printed not on tearable paper, but on a semi-transparent fabric
  • of silken flexibility, interwoven with silk. Across them all sprawled a
  • facsimile of Graham's signature, his first encounter with the curves and
  • turns of that familiar autograph for two hundred and three years.
  • Some intermediary experiences made no impression sufficiently vivid to
  • prevent the matter of the disarmament claiming his thoughts again; a
  • blurred picture of a Theosophist temple that promised MIRACLES in
  • enormous letters of unsteady fire was least submerged perhaps, but then
  • came the view of the dining hall in Northumberland Avenue. That
  • interested him very greatly.
  • By the energy and thought of Asano he was able to view this place from a
  • little screened gallery reserved for the attendants of the tables. The
  • building was pervaded by a distant muffled hooting, piping and bawling,
  • of which he did not at first understand the import, but which recalled a
  • certain mysterious leathery voice he had heard after the resumption of
  • the lights on the night of his solitary wandering.
  • He had grown accustomed to vastness and great numbers of people,
  • nevertheless this spectacle held him for a long time. It was as he
  • watched the table service more immediately beneath, and interspersed
  • with many questions and answers concerning details, that the
  • realisation of the full significance of the feast of several thousand
  • people came to him.
  • It was his constant surprise to find that points that one might have
  • expected to strike vividly at the very outset never occurred to him until
  • some trivial detail suddenly shaped as a riddle and pointed to the
  • obvious thing he had overlooked. He discovered only now that this
  • continuity of the city, this exclusion of weather, these vast halls and
  • ways, involved the disappearance of the household; that the typical
  • Victorian "Home," the little brick cell containing kitchen and scullery,
  • living rooms and bedrooms, had, save for the ruins that diversified the
  • countryside, vanished as surely as the wattle hut. But now he saw what
  • had indeed been manifest from the first, that London, regarded as a
  • living place, was no longer an aggregation of houses but a prodigious
  • hotel, an hotel with a thousand classes of accommodation, thousands of
  • dining halls, chapels, theatres, markets and places of assembly, a
  • synthesis of enterprises, of which he chiefly was the owner. People had
  • their sleeping rooms, with, it might be, antechambers, rooms that were
  • always sanitary at least whatever the degree of comfort and privacy, and
  • for the rest they lived much as many people had lived in the new-made
  • giant hotels of the Victorian days, eating, reading, thinking, playing,
  • conversing, all in places of public resort, going to their work in the
  • industrial quarters of the city or doing business in their offices in the
  • trading section.
  • He perceived at once how necessarily this state of affairs had developed
  • from the Victorian city. The fundamental reason for the modern city had
  • ever been the economy of co-operation. The chief thing to prevent the
  • merging of the separate households in his own generation was simply the
  • still imperfect civilisation of the people, the strong barbaric pride,
  • passions, and prejudices, the jealousies, rivalries, and violence of the
  • middle and lower classes, which had necessitated the entire separation of
  • contiguous households. But the change, the taming of the people, had been
  • in rapid progress even then. In his brief thirty years of previous life
  • he had seen an enormous extension of the habit of consuming meals from
  • home, the casually patronised horse-box coffee-house had given place to
  • the open and crowded Aerated Bread Shop for instance, women's clubs had
  • had their beginning, and an immense development of reading rooms, lounges
  • and libraries had witnessed to the growth of social confidence. These
  • promises had by this time attained to their complete fulfilment. The
  • locked and barred household had passed away.
  • These people below him belonged, he learnt, to the lower middle class,
  • the class just above the blue labourers, a class so accustomed in the
  • Victorian period to feed with every precaution of privacy that its
  • members, when occasion confronted them with a public meal, would usually
  • hide their embarrassment under horseplay or a markedly militant
  • demeanour. But these gaily, if lightly dressed people below, albeit
  • vivacious, hurried and uncommunicative, were dexterously mannered and
  • certainly quite at their ease with regard to one another.
  • He noted a slight significant thing; the table, as far as he could see,
  • was and remained delightfully neat, there was nothing to parallel the
  • confusion, the broadcast crumbs, the splashes of viand and condiment, the
  • overturned drink and displaced ornaments, which would have marked the
  • stormy progress of the Victorian meal. The table furniture was very
  • different. There were no ornaments, no flowers, and the table was without
  • a cloth, being made, he learnt, of a solid substance having the texture
  • and appearance of damask. He discerned that this damask substance was
  • patterned with gracefully designed trade advertisements.
  • In a sort of recess before each diner was a complex apparatus of
  • porcelain and metal. There was one plate of white porcelain, and by means
  • of taps for hot and cold volatile fluids the diner washed this himself
  • between the courses; he also washed his elegant white metal knife and
  • fork and spoon as occasion required.
  • Soup and the chemical wine that was the common drink were delivered by
  • similar taps, and the remaining covers travelled automatically in
  • tastefully arranged dishes down the table along silver rails. The diner
  • stopped these and helped himself at his discretion. They appeared at a
  • little door at one end of the table, and vanished at the other. That turn
  • of democratic sentiment in decay, that ugly pride of menial souls, which
  • renders equals loth to wait on one another, was very strong he found
  • among these people. He was so preoccupied with these details that it was
  • only as he was leaving the place that he remarked the huge advertisement
  • dioramas that marched majestically along the upper walls and proclaimed
  • the most remarkable commodities.
  • Beyond this place they came into a crowded hall, and he discovered the
  • cause of the noise that had perplexed him. They paused at a turnstile at
  • which a payment was made.
  • Graham's attention was immediately arrested by a violent, loud hoot,
  • followed by a vast leathery voice. "The Master is sleeping peacefully,"
  • it vociferated. "He is in excellent health. He is going to devote the
  • rest of his life to aeronautics. He says women are more beautiful than
  • ever. Galloop! Wow! Our wonderful civilisation astonishes him beyond
  • measure. Beyond all measure. Galloop. He puts great trust in Boss
  • Ostrog, absolute confidence in Boss Ostrog. Ostrog is to be his chief
  • minister; is authorised to remove or reinstate public officers--all
  • patronage will be in his hands. All patronage in the hands of Boss
  • Ostrog! The Councillors have been sent back to their own prison above
  • the Council House."
  • Graham stopped at the first sentence, and, looking up, beheld a foolish
  • trumpet face from which this was brayed. This was the General
  • Intelligence Machine. For a space it seemed to be gathering breath, and a
  • regular throbbing from its cylindrical body was audible. Then it
  • trumpeted "Galloop, Galloop," and broke out again.
  • "Paris is now pacified. All resistance is over. Galloop! The black police
  • hold every position of importance in the city. They fought with great
  • bravery, singing songs written in praise of their ancestors by the poet
  • Kipling. Once or twice they got out of hand, and tortured and mutilated
  • wounded and captured insurgents, men and women. Moral--don't go
  • rebelling. Haha! Galloop, Galloop! They are lively fellows. Lively brave
  • fellows. Let this be a lesson to the disorderly banderlog of this city.
  • Yah! Banderlog! Filth of the earth! Galloop, Galloop!"
  • The voice ceased. There was a confused murmur of disapproval among the
  • crowd. "Damned niggers." A man began to harangue near them. "Is this the
  • Master's doing, brothers? Is this the Master's doing?"
  • "Black police!" said Graham. "What is that? You don't mean--"
  • Asano touched his arm and gave him a warning look, and forthwith another
  • of these mechanisms screamed deafeningly and gave tongue in a shrill
  • voice. "Yahaha, Yahah, Yap! Hear a live paper yelp! Live paper. Yaha!
  • Shocking outrage in Paris. Yahahah! The Parisians exasperated by the
  • black police to the pitch of assassination. Dreadful reprisals. Savage
  • times come again. Blood! Blood! Yaha!" The nearer Babble Machine hooted
  • stupendously, "Galloop, Galloop," drowned the end of the sentence, and
  • proceeded in a rather flatter note than before with novel comments on the
  • horrors of disorder. "Law and order must be maintained," said the nearer
  • Babble Machine.
  • "But," began Graham.
  • "Don't ask questions here," said Asano, "or you will be involved in an
  • argument."
  • "Then let us go on," said Graham, "for I want to know more of this."
  • As he and his companion pushed their way through the excited crowd that
  • swarmed beneath these voices, towards the exit, Graham conceived more
  • clearly the proportion and features of this room. Altogether, great and
  • small, there must have been nearly a thousand of these erections,
  • piping, hooting, bawling and gabbling in that great space, each with its
  • crowd of excited listeners, the majority of them men dressed in blue
  • canvas. There were all sizes of machines, from the little gossiping
  • mechanisms that chuckled out mechanical sarcasm in odd corners, through
  • a number of grades to such fifty-foot giants as that which had first
  • hooted over Graham.
  • This place was unusually crowded, because of the intense public interest
  • in the course of affairs in Paris. Evidently the struggle had been much
  • more savage than Ostrog had represented it. All the mechanisms were
  • discoursing upon that topic, and the repetition of the people made the
  • huge hive buzz with such phrases as "Lynched policemen," "Women burnt
  • alive," "Fuzzy Wuzzy." "But does the Master allow such things?" asked a
  • man near him. "Is _this_ the beginning of the Master's rule?"
  • Is _this_ the beginning of the Master's rule? For a long time after he
  • had left the place, the hooting, whistling and braying of the machines
  • pursued him; "Galloop, Galloop," "Yahahah, Yaha, Yap! Yaha!" Is _this_
  • the beginning of the Master's rule?
  • Directly they were out upon the ways he began to question Asano closely
  • on the nature of the Parisian struggle. "This disarmament! What was their
  • trouble? What does it all mean?" Asano seemed chiefly anxious to reassure
  • him that it was "all right."
  • "But these outrages!"
  • "You cannot have an omelette," said Asano, "without breaking eggs. It is
  • only the rough people. Only in one part of the city. All the rest is all
  • right. The Parisian labourers are the wildest in the world, except ours."
  • "What! the Londoners?"
  • "No, the Japanese. They have to be kept in order."
  • "But burning women alive!"
  • "A Commune!" said Asano. "They would rob you of your property. They would
  • do away with property and give the world over to mob rule. You are
  • Master, the world is yours. But there will be no Commune here. There is
  • no need for black police here.
  • "And every consideration has been shown. It is their own negroes--French
  • speaking negroes. Senegal regiments, and Niger and Timbuctoo."
  • "Regiments?" said Graham, "I thought there was only one--"
  • "No," said Asano, and glanced at him. "There is more than one."
  • Graham felt unpleasantly helpless.
  • "I did not think," he began and stopped abruptly. He went off at a
  • tangent to ask for information about these Babble Machines. For the most
  • part, the crowd present had been shabbily or even raggedly dressed, and
  • Graham learnt that so far as the more prosperous classes were concerned,
  • in all the more comfortable private apartments of the city were fixed
  • Babble Machines that would speak directly a lever was pulled. The tenant
  • of the apartment could connect this with the cables of any of the great
  • News Syndicates that he preferred. When he learnt this presently, he
  • demanded the reason of their absence from his own suite of apartments.
  • Asano was embarrassed. "I never thought," he said. "Ostrog must have had
  • them removed."
  • Graham stared. "How was I to know?" he exclaimed.
  • "Perhaps he thought they would annoy you," said Asano.
  • "They must be replaced directly I return," said Graham after an interval.
  • He found a difficulty in understanding that this news room and the dining
  • hall were not great central places, that such establishments were
  • repeated almost beyond counting all over the city. But ever and again
  • during the night's expedition his ears would pick out from the tumult of
  • the ways the peculiar hooting of the organ of Boss Ostrog, "Galloop,
  • Galloop!" or the shrill "Yahaha, Yaha Yap!--Hear a live paper yelp!" of
  • its chief rival.
  • Repeated, too, everywhere, were such _crèches_ as the one he now entered.
  • It was reached by a lift, and by a glass bridge that flung across the
  • dining hall and traversed the ways at a slight upward angle. To enter the
  • first section of the place necessitated the use of his solvent signature
  • under Asano's direction. They were immediately attended to by a man in a
  • violet robe and gold clasp, the insignia of practising medical men. He
  • perceived from this man's manner that his identity was known, and
  • proceeded to ask questions on the strange arrangements of the place
  • without reserve.
  • On either side of the passage, which was silent and padded, as if to
  • deaden the footfall, were narrow little doors, their size and arrangement
  • suggestive of the cells of a Victorian prison. But the upper portion of
  • each door was of the same greenish transparent stuff that had enclosed
  • him at his awakening, and within, dimly seen, lay, in every case, a very
  • young baby in a little nest of wadding. Elaborate apparatus watched the
  • atmosphere and rang a bell far away in the central office at the
  • slightest departure from the optimum of temperature and moisture. A
  • system of such _crèches_ had almost entirely replaced the hazardous
  • adventures of the old-world nursing. The attendant presently called
  • Graham's attention to the wet nurses, a vista of mechanical figures, with
  • arms, shoulders, and breasts of astonishingly realistic modelling,
  • articulation, and texture, but mere brass tripods below, and having in
  • the place of features a flat disc bearing advertisements likely to be of
  • interest to mothers.
  • Of all the strange things that Graham came upon that night, none jarred
  • more upon his habits of thought than this place. The spectacle of the
  • little pink creatures, their feeble limbs swaying uncertainly in vague
  • first movements, left alone, without embrace or endearment, was wholly
  • repugnant to him. The attendant doctor was of a different opinion. His
  • statistical evidence showed beyond dispute that in the Victorian times
  • the most dangerous passage of life was the arms of the mother, that there
  • human mortality had ever been most terrible. On the other hand this
  • _crèche_ company, the International Crèche Syndicate, lost not one-half
  • per cent, of the million babies or so that formed its peculiar care. But
  • Graham's prejudice was too strong even for those figures.
  • Along one of the many passages of the place they presently came upon a
  • young couple in the usual blue canvas peering through the transparency
  • and laughing hysterically at the bald head of their first-born. Graham's
  • face must have showed his estimate of them, for their merriment ceased
  • and they looked abashed. But this little incident accentuated his sudden
  • realisation of the gulf between his habits of thought and the ways of the
  • new age. He passed on to the crawling rooms and the Kindergarten,
  • perplexed and distressed. He found the endless long playrooms were empty!
  • the latter-day children at least still spent their nights in sleep. As
  • they went through these, the little officer pointed out the nature of the
  • toys, developments of those devised by that inspired sentimentalist
  • Froebel. There were nurses here, but much was done by machines that sang
  • and danced and dandled.
  • Graham was still not clear upon many points. "But so many orphans," he
  • said perplexed, reverting to a first misconception, and learnt again that
  • they were not orphans.
  • So soon as they had left the _crèche_ he began to speak of the horror the
  • babies in their incubating cases had caused him. "Is motherhood gone?" he
  • said. "Was it a cant? Surely it was an instinct. This seems so
  • unnatural--abominable almost."
  • "Along here we shall come to the dancing place," said Asano by way of
  • reply. "It is sure to be crowded. In spite of all the political unrest it
  • will be crowded. The women take no great interest in politics--except a
  • few here and there. You will see the mothers--most young women in London
  • are mothers. In that class it is considered a creditable thing to have
  • one child--a proof of animation. Few middle class people have more than
  • one. With the Labour Department it is different. As for motherhood! They
  • still take an immense pride in the children. They come here to look at
  • them quite often."
  • "Then do you mean that the population of the World--?"
  • "Is falling? Yes. Except among the people under the Labour Department. In
  • spite of scientific discipline they are reckless--"
  • The air was suddenly dancing with music, and down a way they approached
  • obliquely, set with gorgeous pillars as it seemed of clear amethyst,
  • flowed a concourse of gay people and a tumult of merry cries and
  • laughter. He saw curled heads, wreathed brows, and a happy intricate
  • flutter of gamboge pass triumphant across the picture.
  • "You will see," said Asano with a faint smile. "The world has changed. In
  • a moment you will see the mothers of the new age. Come this way. We shall
  • see those yonder again very soon."
  • They ascended a certain height in a swift lift, and changed to a slower
  • one. As they went on the music grew upon them, until it was near and full
  • and splendid, and, moving with its glorious intricacies they could
  • distinguish the beat of innumerable dancing feet. They made a payment at
  • a turnstile, and emerged upon the wide gallery that overlooked the
  • dancing place, and upon the full enchantment of sound and sight.
  • "Here," said Asano, "are the fathers and mothers of the little
  • ones you saw."
  • The hall was not so richly decorated as that of the Atlas, but saving
  • that, it was, for its size, the most splendid Graham had seen. The
  • beautiful white-limbed figures that supported the galleries reminded him
  • once more of the restored magnificence of sculpture; they seemed to
  • writhe in engaging attitudes, their faces laughed. The source of the
  • music that filled the place was hidden, and the whole vast shining floor
  • was thick with dancing couples. "Look at them," said the little officer,
  • "see how much they show of motherhood."
  • The gallery they stood upon ran along the upper edge of a huge screen
  • that cut the dancing hall on one side from a sort of outer hall that
  • showed through broad arches the incessant onward rush of the city ways.
  • In this outer hall was a great crowd of less brilliantly dressed people,
  • as numerous almost as those who danced within, the great majority wearing
  • the blue uniform of the Labour Department that was now so familiar to
  • Graham. Too poor to pass the turnstiles to the festival, they were yet
  • unable to keep away from the sound of its seductions. Some of them even
  • had cleared spaces, and were dancing also, fluttering their rags in the
  • air. Some shouted as they danced, jests and odd allusions Graham did not
  • understand. Once someone began whistling the refrain of the revolutionary
  • song, but it seemed as though that beginning was promptly suppressed. The
  • corner was dark and Graham could not see. He turned to the hall again.
  • Above the caryatids were marble busts of men whom that age esteemed great
  • moral emancipators and pioneers; for the most part their names were
  • strange to Graham, though he recognised Grant Allen, Le Gallienne,
  • Nietzsche, Shelley and Goodwin. Great black festoons and eloquent
  • sentiments reinforced the huge inscription that partially defaced the
  • upper end of the dancing place, and asserted that "The Festival of the
  • Awakening" was in progress.
  • "Myriads are taking holiday or staying from work because of that, quite
  • apart from the labourers who refuse to go back," said Asano. "These
  • people are always ready for holidays."
  • Graham walked to the parapet and stood leaning over, looking down at the
  • dancers. Save for two or three remote whispering couples, who had stolen
  • apart, he and his guide had the gallery to themselves. A warm breath of
  • scent and vitality came up to him. Both men and women below were lightly
  • clad, bare-armed, open-necked, as the universal warmth of the city
  • permitted. The hair of the men was often a mass of effeminate curls,
  • their chins were always shaven, and many of them had flushed or coloured
  • cheeks. Many of the women were very pretty, and all were dressed with
  • elaborate coquetry. As they swept by beneath, he saw ecstatic faces with
  • eyes half closed in pleasure.
  • "What sort of people are these?" he asked abruptly.
  • "Workers--prosperous workers. What you would have called the middle
  • class. Independent tradesmen with little separate businesses have
  • vanished long ago, but there are store servers, managers, engineers of a
  • hundred sorts. To-night is a holiday of course, and every dancing place
  • in the city will be crowded, and every place of worship."
  • "But--the women?"
  • "The same. There's a thousand forms of work for women now. But you had
  • the beginning of the independent working-woman in your days. Most women
  • are independent now. Most of these are married more or less--there are a
  • number of methods of contract--and that gives them more money, and
  • enables them to enjoy themselves."
  • "I see," said Graham, looking at the flushed faces, the flash and swirl
  • of movement, and still thinking of that nightmare of pink helpless limbs.
  • "And these are--mothers."
  • "Most of them."
  • "The more I see of these things the more complex I find your problems.
  • This, for instance, is a surprise. That news from Paris was a surprise."
  • In a little while he spoke again:
  • "These are mothers. Presently, I suppose, I shall get into the modern way
  • of seeing things. I have old habits of mind clinging about me--habits
  • based, I suppose, on needs that are over and done with. Of course, in our
  • time, a woman was supposed not only to bear children, but to cherish
  • them, to devote herself to them, to educate them--all the essentials of
  • moral and mental education a child owed its mother. Or went without.
  • Quite a number, I admit, went without. Nowadays, clearly, there is no
  • more need for such care than if they were butterflies. I see that! Only
  • there was an ideal--that figure of a grave, patient woman, silently and
  • serenely mistress of a home, mother and maker of men--to love her was a
  • sort of worship--"
  • He stopped and repeated, "A sort of worship."
  • "Ideals change," said the little man, "as needs change."
  • Graham awoke from an instant reverie and Asano repeated his words.
  • Graham's mind returned to the thing at hand.
  • "Of course I see the perfect reasonableness of this. Restraint,
  • soberness, the matured thought, the unselfish act, they are necessities
  • of the barbarous state, the life of dangers. Dourness is man's tribute to
  • unconquered nature. But man has conquered nature now for all practical
  • purposes--his political affairs are managed by Bosses with a black
  • police--and life is joyous."
  • He looked at the dancers again. "Joyous," he said.
  • "There are weary moments," said the little officer, reflectively.
  • "They all look young. Down there I should be visibly the oldest man. And
  • in my own time I should have passed as middle-aged."
  • "They are young. There are few old people in this class in the
  • work cities."
  • "How is that?"
  • "Old people's lives are not so pleasant as they used to be, unless they
  • are rich to hire lovers and helpers. And we have an institution called
  • Euthanasy."
  • "Ah! that Euthanasy!" said Graham. "The easy death?"
  • "The easy death. It is the last pleasure. The Euthanasy Company does it
  • well. People will pay the sum--it is a costly thing--long beforehand, go
  • off to some pleasure city and return impoverished and weary, very weary."
  • "There is a lot left for me to understand," said Graham after a pause.
  • "Yet I see the logic of it all. Our array of angry virtues and sour
  • restraints was the consequence of danger and insecurity. The Stoic, the
  • Puritan, even in my time, were vanishing types. In the old days man was
  • armed against Pain, now he is eager for Pleasure. There lies the
  • difference. Civilisation has driven pain and danger so far off--for
  • well-to-do people. And only well-to-do people matter now. I have been
  • asleep two hundred years."
  • For a minute they leant on the balustrading, following the intricate
  • evolution of the dance. Indeed the scene was very beautiful.
  • "Before God," said Graham, suddenly, "I would rather be a wounded
  • sentinel freezing in the snow than one of these painted fools!"
  • "In the snow," said Asano, "one might think differently."
  • "I am uncivilised," said Graham, not heeding him. "That is the trouble. I
  • am primitive--Paleolithic. _Their_ fountain of rage and fear and anger is
  • sealed and closed, the habits of a lifetime make them cheerful and easy
  • and delightful. You must bear with my nineteenth century shocks and
  • disgusts. These people, you say, are skilled workers and so forth. And
  • while these dance, men are fighting--men are dying in Paris to keep the
  • world--that they may dance."
  • Asano smiled faintly. "For that matter, men are dying in London," he
  • said.
  • There was a moment's silence.
  • "Where do these sleep?" asked Graham.
  • "Above and below--an intricate warren."
  • "And where do they work? This is--the domestic life."
  • "You will see little work to-night. Half the workers are out or under
  • arms. Half these people are keeping holiday. But we will go to the work
  • places if you wish it."
  • For a time Graham watched the dancers, then suddenly turned away. "I want
  • to see the workers. I have seen enough of these," he said.
  • Asano led the way along the gallery across the dancing hall. Presently
  • they came to a transverse passage that brought a breath of fresher,
  • colder air.
  • Asano glanced at this passage as they went past, stopped, went back to
  • it, and turned to Graham with a smile. "Here, Sire," he said, "is
  • something--will be familiar to you at least--and yet--. But I will not
  • tell you. Come!"
  • He led the way along a closed passage that presently became cold. The
  • reverberation of their feet told that this passage was a bridge. They
  • came into a circular gallery that was glazed in from the outer weather,
  • and so reached a circular chamber which seemed familiar, though Graham
  • could not recall distinctly when he had entered it before. In this was a
  • ladder--the first ladder he had seen since his awakening--up which they
  • went, and came into a high, dark, cold place in which was another almost
  • vertical ladder. This they ascended, Graham still perplexed.
  • But at the top he understood, and recognised the metallic bars to which
  • he clung. He was in the cage under the ball of St. Paul's. The dome rose
  • but a little way above the general contour of the city, into the still
  • twilight, and sloped away, shining greasily under a few distant lights,
  • into a circumambient ditch of darkness.
  • Out between the bars he looked upon the wind-clear northern sky and saw
  • the starry constellations all unchanged. Capella hung in the west, Vega
  • was rising, and the seven glittering points of the Great Bear swept
  • overhead in their stately circle about the Pole.
  • He saw these stars in a clear gap of sky. To the east and south the great
  • circular shapes of complaining wind-wheels blotted out the heavens, so
  • that the glare about the Council House was hidden. To the southwest hung
  • Orion, showing like a pallid ghost through a tracery of iron-work and
  • interlacing shapes above a dazzling coruscation of lights. A bellowing
  • and siren screaming that came from the flying stages warned the world
  • that one of the aeroplanes was ready to start. He remained for a space
  • gazing towards the glaring stage. Then his eyes went back to the
  • northward constellations.
  • For a long time he was silent. "This," he said at last, smiling in the
  • shadow, "seems the strangest thing of all. To stand in the dome of St.
  • Paul's and look once more upon these familiar, silent stars!"
  • Thence Graham was taken by Asano along devious ways to the great gambling
  • and business quarters where the bulk of the fortunes in the city were
  • lost and made. It impressed him as a well-nigh interminable series of
  • very high halls, surrounded by tiers upon tiers of galleries into which
  • opened thousands of offices, and traversed by a complicated multitude of
  • bridges, footways, aerial motor rails, and trapeze and cable leaps. And
  • here more than anywhere the note of vehement vitality, of uncontrollable,
  • hasty activity, rose high. Everywhere was violent advertisement, until
  • his brain swam at the tumult of light and colour. And Babble Machines of
  • a peculiarly rancid tone were abundant and filled the air with strenuous
  • squealing and an idiotic slang. "Skin your eyes and slide," "Gewhoop,
  • Bonanza," "Gollipers come and hark!"
  • The place seemed to him to be dense with people either profoundly
  • agitated or swelling with obscure cunning, yet he learnt that the place
  • was comparatively empty, that the great political convulsion of the last
  • few days had reduced transactions to an unprecedented minimum. In one
  • huge place were long avenues of roulette tables, each with an excited,
  • undignified crowd about it; in another a yelping Babel of white-faced
  • women and red-necked leathery-lunged men bought and sold the shares of an
  • absolutely fictitious business undertaking which, every five minutes,
  • paid a dividend of ten per cent, and cancelled a certain proportion of
  • its shares by means of a lottery wheel.
  • These business activities were prosecuted with an energy that readily
  • passed into violence, and Graham approaching a dense crowd found at its
  • centre a couple of prominent merchants in violent controversy with teeth
  • and nails on some delicate point of business etiquette. Something still
  • remained in life to be fought for. Further he had a shock at a vehement
  • announcement in phonetic letters of scarlet flame, each twice the height
  • of a man, that "WE ASSURE THE PROPRAIET'R. WE ASSURE THE PROPRAIET'R."
  • "Who's the proprietor?" he asked.
  • "You."
  • "But what do they assure me?" he asked. "What do they assure me?"
  • "Didn't you have assurance?"
  • Graham thought. "Insurance?"
  • "Yes--Insurance. I remember that was the older word. They are insuring
  • your life. Dozands of people are taking out policies, myriads of lions
  • are being put on you. And further on other people are buying annuities.
  • They do that on everybody who is at all prominent. Look there!"
  • A crowd of people surged and roared, and Graham saw a vast black screen
  • suddenly illuminated in still larger letters of burning purple. "Anuetes
  • on the Propraiet'r--x 5 pr. G." The people began to boo and shout at
  • this, a number of hard breathing, wild-eyed men came running past,
  • clawing with hooked fingers at the air. There was a furious crush about a
  • little doorway.
  • Asano did a brief, inaccurate calculation. "Seventeen per cent, per
  • annum is their annuity on you. They would not pay so much per cent, if
  • they could see you now, Sire. But they do not know. Your own annuities
  • used to be a very safe investment, but now you are sheer gambling, of
  • course. This is probably a desperate bid. I doubt if people will get
  • their money."
  • The crowd of would-be annuitants grew so thick about them that for some
  • time they could move neither forward nor backward. Graham noticed what
  • appeared to him to be a high proportion of women among the speculators,
  • and was reminded again of the economic independence of their sex. They
  • seemed remarkably well able to take care of themselves in the crowd,
  • using their elbows with particular skill, as he learnt to his cost. One
  • curly-headed person caught in the pressure for a space, looked
  • steadfastly at him several times, almost as if she recognised him, and
  • then, edging deliberately towards him, touched his hand with her arm in a
  • scarcely accidental manner, and made it plain by a look as ancient as
  • Chaldea that he had found favour in her eyes. And then a lank,
  • grey-bearded man, perspiring copiously in a noble passion of self-help,
  • blind to all earthly things save that glaring bait, thrust between them
  • in a cataclysmal rush towards that alluring "X 5 pr. G."
  • "I want to get out of this," said Graham to Asano. "This is not what I
  • came to see. Show me the workers. I want to see the people in blue. These
  • parasitic lunatics--"
  • He found himself wedged into a straggling mass of people.
  • CHAPTER XXI
  • THE UNDER-SIDE
  • From the Business Quarter they presently passed by the running ways into
  • a remote quarter of the city, where the bulk of the manufactures was
  • done. On their way the platforms crossed the Thames twice, and passed in
  • a broad viaduct across one of the great roads that entered the city from
  • the North. In both cases his impression was swift and in both very vivid.
  • The river was a broad wrinkled glitter of black sea water, overarched by
  • buildings, and vanishing either way into a blackness starred with
  • receding lights. A string of black barges passed seaward, manned by
  • blue-clad men. The road was a long and very broad and high tunnel, along
  • which big-wheeled machines drove noiselessly and swiftly. Here, too, the
  • distinctive blue of the Labour Department was in abundance. The
  • smoothness of the double tracks, the largeness and the lightness of the
  • big pneumatic wheels in proportion to the vehicular body, struck Graham
  • most vividly. One lank and very high carriage with longitudinal metallic
  • rods hung with the dripping carcasses of many hundred sheep arrested his
  • attention unduly. Abruptly the edge of the archway cut and blotted out
  • the picture.
  • Presently they left the way and descended by a lift and traversed a
  • passage that sloped downward, and so came to a descending lift again. The
  • appearance of things changed. Even the pretence of architectural
  • ornament disappeared, the lights diminished in number and size, the
  • architecture became more and more massive in proportion to the spaces as
  • the factory quarters were reached. And in the dusty biscuit-making place
  • of the potters, among the felspar mills, in the furnace rooms of the
  • metal workers, among the incandescent lakes of crude Eadhamite, the blue
  • canvas clothing was on man, woman and child.
  • Many of these great and dusty galleries were silent avenues of machinery,
  • endless raked out ashen furnaces testified to the revolutionary
  • dislocation, but wherever there was work it was being done by slow-moving
  • workers in blue canvas. The only people not in blue canvas were the
  • overlookers of the work-places and the orange-clad Labour Police. And
  • fresh from the flushed faces of the dancing halls, the voluntary vigours
  • of the business quarter, Graham could note the pinched faces, the feeble
  • muscles, and weary eyes of many of the latter-day workers. Such as he saw
  • at work were noticeably inferior in physique to the few gaily dressed
  • managers and forewomen who were directing their labours. The burly
  • labourers of the old Victorian times had followed that dray horse and all
  • such living force producers, to extinction; the place of his costly
  • muscles was taken by some dexterous machine. The latter-day labourer,
  • male as well as female, was essentially a machine-minder and feeder, a
  • servant and attendant, or an artist under direction.
  • The women, in comparison with those Graham remembered, were as a class
  • distinctly plain and flat-chested. Two hundred years of emancipation
  • from the moral restraints of Puritanical religion, two hundred years of
  • city life, had done their work in eliminating the strain of feminine
  • beauty and vigour from the blue canvas myriads. To be brilliant
  • physically or mentally, to be in any way attractive or exceptional, had
  • been and was still a certain way of emancipation to the drudge, a line
  • of escape to the Pleasure City and its splendours and delights, and at
  • last to the Euthanasy and peace. To be steadfast against such
  • inducements was scarcely to be expected of meanly nourished souls. In
  • the young cities of Graham's former life, the newly aggregated labouring
  • mass had been a diverse multitude, still stirred by the tradition of
  • personal honour and a high morality; now it was differentiating into an
  • instinct class, with a moral and physical difference of its own--even
  • with a dialect of its own.
  • They penetrated downward, ever downward, towards the working places.
  • Presently they passed underneath one of the streets of the moving ways,
  • and saw its platforms running on their rails far overhead, and chinks of
  • white lights between the transverse slits. The factories that were not
  • working were sparsely lighted; to Graham they and their shrouded aisles
  • of giant machines seemed plunged in gloom, and even where work was going
  • on the illumination was far less brilliant than upon the public ways.
  • Beyond the blazing lakes of Eadhamite he came to the warren of the
  • jewellers, and, with some difficulty and by using his signature, obtained
  • admission to these galleries. They were high and dark, and rather cold.
  • In the first a few men were making ornaments of gold filigree, each man
  • at a little bench by himself, and with a little shaded light. The long
  • vista of light patches, with the nimble fingers brightly lit and moving
  • among the gleaming yellow coils, and the intent face like the face of a
  • ghost, in each shadow, had the oddest effect.
  • The work was beautifully executed, but without any strength of modelling
  • or drawing, for the most part intricate grotesques or the ringing of the
  • changes on a geometrical _motif_. These workers wore a peculiar white
  • uniform without pockets or sleeves. They assumed this on coming to work,
  • but at night they were stripped and examined before they left the
  • premises of the Department. In spite of every precaution, the Labour
  • policeman told them in a depressed tone, the Department was not
  • infrequently robbed.
  • Beyond was a gallery of women busied in cutting and setting slabs of
  • artificial ruby, and next these were men and women working together upon
  • the slabs of copper net that formed the basis of _cloisonné_ tiles. Many
  • of these workers had lips and nostrils a livid white, due to a disease
  • caused by a peculiar purple enamel that chanced to be much in fashion.
  • Asano apologised to Graham for this offensive sight, but excused himself
  • on the score of the convenience of this route. "This is what I wanted to
  • see," said Graham; "this is what I wanted to see," trying to avoid a
  • start at a particularly striking disfigurement.
  • "She might have done better with herself than that," said Asano.
  • Graham made some indignant comments.
  • "But, Sire, we simply could not stand that stuff without the purple,"
  • said Asano. "In your days people could stand such crudities, they were
  • nearer the barbaric by two hundred years."
  • They continued along one of the lower galleries of this _cloisonné_
  • factory, and came to a little bridge that spanned a vault. Looking over
  • the parapet, Graham saw that beneath was a wharf under yet more
  • tremendous archings than any he had seen. Three barges, smothered in
  • floury dust, were being unloaded of their cargoes of powdered felspar by
  • a multitude of coughing men, each guiding a little truck; the dust filled
  • the place with a choking mist, and turned the electric glare yellow. The
  • vague shadows of these workers gesticulated about their feet, and rushed
  • to and fro against a long stretch of white-washed wall. Every now and
  • then one would stop to cough.
  • A shadowy, huge mass of masonry rising out of the inky water, brought to
  • Graham's mind the thought of the multitude of ways and galleries and
  • lifts that rose floor above floor overhead between him and the sky. The
  • men worked in silence under the supervision of two of the Labour Police;
  • their feet made a hollow thunder on the planks along which they went to
  • and fro. And as he looked at this scene, some hidden voice in the
  • darkness began to sing.
  • "Stop that!" shouted one of the policemen, but the order was disobeyed,
  • and first one and then all the white-stained men who were working there
  • had taken up the beating refrain, singing it defiantly--the Song of the
  • Revolt. The feet upon the planks thundered now to the rhythm of the song,
  • tramp, tramp, tramp. The policeman who had shouted glanced at his fellow,
  • and Graham saw him shrug his shoulders. He made no further effort to stop
  • the singing.
  • And so they went through these factories and places of toil, seeing many
  • painful and grim things. That walk left on Graham's mind a maze of
  • memories, fluctuating pictures of swathed halls, and crowded vaults seen
  • through clouds of dust, of intricate machines, the racing threads of
  • looms, the heavy beat of stamping machinery, the roar and rattle of belt
  • and armature, of ill-lit subterranean aisles of sleeping places,
  • illimitable vistas of pin-point lights. Here was the smell of tanning,
  • and here the reek of a brewery, and here unprecedented reeks. Everywhere
  • were pillars and cross archings of such a massiveness as Graham had never
  • before seen, thick Titans of greasy, shining brickwork crushed beneath
  • the vast weight of that complex city world, even as these anemic millions
  • were crushed by its complexity. And everywhere were pale features, lean
  • limbs, disfigurement and degradation.
  • Once and again, and again a third time, Graham heard the song of the
  • revolt during his long, unpleasant research in these places, and once he
  • saw a confused struggle down a passage, and learnt that a number of these
  • serfs had seized their bread before their work was done. Graham was
  • ascending towards the ways again when he saw a number of blue-clad
  • children running down a transverse passage, and presently perceived the
  • reason of their panic in a company of the Labour Police armed with clubs,
  • trotting towards some unknown disturbance. And then came a remote
  • disorder. But for the most part this remnant that worked, worked
  • hopelessly. All the spirit that was left in fallen humanity was above in
  • the streets that night, calling for the Master, and valiantly and noisily
  • keeping its arms.
  • They emerged from these wanderings and stood blinking in the bright light
  • of the middle passage of the platforms again. They became aware of the
  • remote hooting and yelping of the machines of one of the General
  • Intelligence Offices, and suddenly came men running, and along the
  • platforms and about the ways everywhere was a shouting and crying. Then a
  • woman with a face of mute white terror, and another who gasped and
  • shrieked as she ran.
  • "What has happened now?" said Graham, puzzled, for he could not
  • understand their thick speech. Then he heard it in English and perceived
  • that the thing that everyone was shouting, that men yelled to one
  • another, that women took up screaming, that was passing like the first
  • breeze of a thunderstorm, chill and sudden through the city, was this:
  • "Ostrog has ordered the Black Police to London. The Black Police are
  • coming from South Africa.... The Black Police. The Black Police."
  • Asano's face was white and astonished; he hesitated, looked at Graham's
  • face, and told him the thing he already knew. "But how can they know?"
  • asked Asano.
  • Graham heard someone shouting. "Stop all work. Stop all work," and a
  • swarthy hunchback, ridiculously gay in green and gold, came leaping down
  • the platforms toward him, bawling again and again in good English, "This
  • is Ostrog's doing, Ostrog the Knave! The Master is betrayed." His voice
  • was hoarse and a thin foam dropped from his ugly shouting mouth. He
  • yelled an unspeakable horror that the Black Police had done in Paris, and
  • so passed shrieking, "Ostrog the Knave!"
  • For a moment Graham stood still, for it had come upon him again that
  • these things were a dream. He looked up at the great cliff of buildings
  • on either side, vanishing into blue haze at last above the lights, and
  • down to the roaring tiers of platforms, and the shouting, running people
  • who were gesticulating past. "The Master is betrayed!" they cried. "The
  • Master is betrayed!"
  • Suddenly the situation shaped itself in his mind real and urgent. His
  • heart began to beat fast and strong.
  • "It has come," he said. "I might have known. The hour has come."
  • He thought swiftly. "What am I to do?"
  • "Go back to the Council House," said Asano.
  • "Why should I not appeal--? The people are here."
  • "You will lose time. They will doubt if it is you. But they will mass
  • about the Council House. There you will find their leaders. Your strength
  • is there--with them."
  • "Suppose this is only a rumour?"
  • "It sounds true," said Asano.
  • "Let us have the facts," said Graham.
  • Asano shrugged his shoulders. "We had better get towards the Council
  • House," he cried. "That is where they will swarm. Even now the ruins may
  • be impassable."
  • Graham regarded him doubtfully and followed him.
  • They went up the stepped platforms to the swiftest one, and there Asano
  • accosted a labourer. The answers to his questions were in the thick,
  • vulgar speech.
  • "What did he say?" asked Graham.
  • "He knows little, but he told me that the Black Police would have arrived
  • here before the people knew--had not someone in the Wind-Vane Offices
  • learnt. He said a girl."
  • "A girl? Not--?"
  • "He said a girl--he did not know who she was. Who came out from the
  • Council House crying aloud, and told the men at work among the ruins."
  • And then another thing was shouted, something that turned an aimless
  • tumult into determinate movements, it came like a wind along the
  • street. "To your wards, to your wards. Every man get arms. Every man to
  • his ward!"
  • CHAPTER XXII
  • THE STRUGGLE IN THE COUNCIL HOUSE
  • As Asano and Graham hurried along to the ruins about the Council House,
  • they saw everywhere the excitement of the people rising. "To your wards!
  • To your wards!" Everywhere men and women in blue were hurrying from
  • unknown subterranean employments, up the staircases of the middle path;
  • at one place Graham saw an arsenal of the revolutionary committee
  • besieged by a crowd of shouting men, at another a couple of men in the
  • hated yellow uniform of the Labour Police, pursued by a gathering crowd,
  • fled precipitately along the swift way that went in the opposite
  • direction.
  • The cries of "To your wards!" became at last a continuous shouting as
  • they drew near the Government quarter. Many of the shouts were
  • unintelligible. "Ostrog has betrayed us," one man bawled in a hoarse
  • voice, again and again, dinning that refrain into Graham's ear until it
  • haunted him. This person stayed close beside Graham and Asano on the
  • swift way, shouting to the people who swarmed on the lower platforms as
  • he rushed past them. His cry about Ostrog alternated with some
  • incomprehensible orders. Presently he went leaping down and disappeared.
  • Graham's mind was filled with the din. His plans were vague and unformed.
  • He had one picture of some commanding position from which he could
  • address the multitudes, another of meeting Ostrog face to face. He was
  • full of rage, of tense muscular excitement, his hands gripped, his lips
  • were pressed together.
  • The way to the Council House across the ruins was impassable, but Asano
  • met that difficulty and took Graham into the premises of the central
  • post-office. The post-office was nominally at work, but the blue-clothed
  • porters moved sluggishly or had stopped to stare through the arches of
  • their galleries at the shouting men who were going by outside. "Every man
  • to his ward! Every man to his ward!" Here, by Asano's advice, Graham
  • revealed his identity.
  • They crossed to the Council House by a cable cradle. Already in the brief
  • interval since the capitulation of the Councillors a great change had
  • been wrought in the appearance of the ruins. The spurting cascades of the
  • ruptured sea-water mains had been captured and tamed, and huge temporary
  • pipes ran overhead along a flimsy looking fabric of girders. The sky was
  • laced with restored cables and wires that served the Council House, and a
  • mass of new fabric with cranes and other building machines going to and
  • fro upon it projected to the left of the white pile.
  • The moving ways that ran across this area had been restored, albeit for
  • once running under the open sky. These were the ways that Graham had seen
  • from the little balcony in the hour of his awakening, not nine days
  • since, and the hall of his Trance had been on the further side, where now
  • shapeless piles of smashed and shattered masonry were heaped together.
  • It was already high day and the sun was shining brightly. Out of their
  • tall caverns of blue electric light came the swift ways crowded with
  • multitudes of people, who poured off them and gathered ever denser over
  • the wreckage and confusion of the ruins. The air was full of their
  • shouting, and they were pressing and swaying towards the central
  • building. For the most part that shouting mass consisted of shapeless
  • swarms, but here and there Graham could see that a rude discipline
  • struggled to establish itself. And every voice clamoured for order in the
  • chaos. "To your wards! Every man to his ward!"
  • The cable carried them into a hall which Graham recognised as the
  • ante-chamber to the Hall of the Atlas, about the gallery of which he had
  • walked days ago with Howard to show himself to the Vanished Council, an
  • hour from his awakening. Now the place was empty except for two cable
  • attendants. These men seemed hugely astonished to recognise the Sleeper
  • in the man who swung down from the cross seat.
  • "Where is Ostrog?" he demanded. "I must see Ostrog forthwith. He has
  • disobeyed me. I have come back to take things out of his hands." Without
  • waiting for Asano, he went straight across the place, ascended the steps
  • at the further end, and, pulling the curtain aside, found himself facing
  • the perpetually labouring Titan.
  • The hall was empty. Its appearance had changed very greatly since his
  • first sight of it. It had suffered serious injury in the violent
  • struggle of the first outbreak. On the right hand side of the great
  • figure the upper half of the wall had been torn away for nearly two
  • hundred feet of its length, and a sheet of the same glassy film that had
  • enclosed Graham at his awakening had been drawn across the gap. This
  • deadened, but did not altogether exclude the roar of the people outside.
  • "Wards! Wards! Wards!" they seemed to be saying. Through it there were
  • visible the beams and supports of metal scaffoldings that rose and fell
  • according to the requirements of a great crowd of workmen. An idle
  • building machine, with lank arms of red painted metal stretched gauntly
  • across this green tinted picture. On it were still a number of workmen
  • staring at the crowd below. For a moment he stood regarding these
  • things, and Asano overtook him.
  • "Ostrog," said Asano, "will be in the small offices beyond there." The
  • little man looked livid now and his eyes searched Graham's face.
  • They had scarcely advanced ten paces from the curtain before a little
  • panel to the left of the Atlas rolled up, and Ostrog, accompanied by
  • Lincoln and followed by two black and yellow clad negroes, appeared
  • crossing the remote corner of the hall, towards a second panel that was
  • raised and open. "Ostrog," shouted Graham, and at the sound of his voice
  • the little party turned astonished.
  • Ostrog said something to Lincoln and advanced alone.
  • Graham was the first to speak. His voice was loud and dictatorial. "What
  • is this I hear?" he asked. "Are you bringing negroes here--to keep the
  • people down?"
  • "It is none too soon," said Ostrog. "They have been getting out of hand
  • more and more, since the revolt. I under-estimated--"
  • "Do you mean that these infernal negroes are on the way?"
  • "On the way. As it is, you have seen the people--outside?"
  • "No wonder! But--after what was said. You have taken too much on
  • yourself, Ostrog."
  • Ostrog said nothing, but drew nearer.
  • "These negroes must not come to London," said Graham. "I am Master and
  • they shall not come."
  • Ostrog glanced at Lincoln, who at once came towards them with his two
  • attendants close behind him. "Why not?" asked Ostrog.
  • "White men must be mastered by white men. Besides--"
  • "The negroes are only an instrument."
  • "But that is not the question. I am the Master. I mean to be the Master.
  • And I tell you these negroes shall not come."
  • "The people--"
  • "I believe in the people."
  • "Because you are an anachronism. You are a man out of the Past--an
  • accident. You are Owner perhaps of the world. Nominally--legally. But you
  • are not Master. You do not know enough to be Master."
  • He glanced at Lincoln again. "I know now what you think--I can guess
  • something of what you mean to do. Even now it is not too late to warn
  • you. You dream of human equality--of some sort of socialistic order--you
  • have all those worn-out dreams of the nineteenth century fresh and vivid
  • in your mind, and you would rule this age that you do not understand."
  • "Listen!" said Graham. "You can hear it--a sound like the sea. Not
  • voices--but a voice. Do _you_ altogether understand?"
  • "We taught them that," said Ostrog.
  • "Perhaps. Can you teach them to forget it? But enough of this! These
  • negroes must not come."
  • There was a pause and Ostrog looked him in the eyes.
  • "They will," he said.
  • "I forbid it," said Graham.
  • "They have started."
  • "I will not have it."
  • "No," said Ostrog. "Sorry as I am to follow the method of the
  • Council--. For your own good--you must not side with--Disorder. And now
  • that you are here--. It was kind of you to come here."
  • Lincoln laid his hand on Graham's shoulder. Abruptly Graham realised the
  • enormity of his blunder in coming to the Council House. He turned
  • towards the curtains that separated the hall from the ante-chamber. The
  • clutching hand of Asano intervened. In another moment Lincoln had
  • grasped Graham's cloak.
  • He turned and struck at Lincoln's face, and incontinently a negro had him
  • by collar and arm. He wrenched himself away, his sleeve tore noisily, and
  • he stumbled back, to be tripped by the other attendant. Then he struck
  • the ground heavily and he was staring at the distant ceiling of the hall.
  • He shouted, rolled over, struggling fiercely, clutched an attendant's leg
  • and threw him headlong, and struggled to his feet.
  • Lincoln appeared before him, went down heavily again with a blow under
  • the point of the jaw and lay still. Graham made two strides, stumbled.
  • And then Ostrog's arm was round his neck, he was pulled over backward,
  • fell heavily, and his arms were pinned to the ground. After a few violent
  • efforts he ceased to struggle and lay staring at Ostrog's heaving throat.
  • "You--are--a prisoner," panted Ostrog, exulting. "You--were rather a
  • fool--to come back."
  • Graham turned his head about and perceived through the irregular green
  • window in the walls of the hall the men who had been working the building
  • cranes gesticulating excitedly to the people below them. They had seen!
  • Ostrog followed his eyes and started. He shouted something to Lincoln,
  • but Lincoln did not move. A bullet smashed among the mouldings above the
  • Atlas. The two sheets of transparent matter that had been stretched
  • across this gap were rent, the edges of the torn aperture darkened,
  • curved, ran rapidly towards the framework, and in a moment the Council
  • chamber stood open to the air. A chilly gust blew in by the gap, bringing
  • with it a war of voices from the ruinous spaces without, an elvish
  • babblement, "Save the Master!" "What are they doing to the Master?" "The
  • Master is betrayed!"
  • And then he realised that Ostrog's attention was distracted, that
  • Ostrog's grip had relaxed, and, wrenching his arms free, he struggled to
  • his knees. In another moment he had thrust Ostrog back, and he was on one
  • foot, his hand gripping Ostrog's throat, and Ostrog's hands clutching the
  • silk about his neck.
  • But now men were coming towards them from the dais--men whose intentions
  • he misunderstood. He had a glimpse of someone running in the distance
  • towards the curtains of the antechamber, and then Ostrog had slipped from
  • him and these newcomers were upon him. To his infinite astonishment, they
  • seized him. They obeyed the shouts of Ostrog.
  • He was lugged a dozen yards before he realised that they were not
  • friends--that they were dragging him towards the open panel. When he saw
  • this he pulled back, he tried to fling himself down, he shouted for help
  • with all his strength. And this time there were answering cries.
  • The grip upon his neck relaxed, and behold! in the lower corner of the
  • rent upon the wall, first one and then a number of little black figures
  • appeared shouting and waving arms. They came leaping down from the gap
  • into the light gallery that had led to the Silent Rooms. They ran along
  • it, so near were they that Graham could see the weapons in their hands.
  • Then Ostrog was shouting in his ear to the men who held him, and once
  • more he was struggling with all his strength against their endeavours to
  • thrust him towards the opening that yawned to receive him. "They can't
  • come down," panted Ostrog. "They daren't fire. It's all right. We'll save
  • him from them yet."
  • For long minutes as it seemed to Graham that inglorious struggle
  • continued. His clothes were rent in a dozen places, he was covered in
  • dust, one hand had been trodden upon. He could hear the shouts of his
  • supporters, and once he heard shots. He could feel his strength giving
  • way, feel his efforts wild and aimless. But no help came, and surely,
  • irresistibly, that black, yawning opening came nearer.
  • The pressure upon him relaxed and he struggled up. He saw Ostrog's grey
  • head receding and perceived that he was no longer held. He turned about
  • and came full into a man in black. One of the green weapons cracked close
  • to him, a drift of pungent smoke came into his face, and a steel blade
  • flashed. The huge chamber span about him.
  • He saw a man in pale blue stabbing one of the black and yellow attendants
  • not three yards from his face. Then hands were upon him again.
  • He was being pulled in two directions now. It seemed as though people
  • were shouting to him. He wanted to understand and could not. Someone was
  • clutching about his thighs, he was being hoisted in spite of his vigorous
  • efforts. He understood suddenly, he ceased to struggle. He was lifted up
  • on men's shoulders and carried away from that devouring panel. Ten
  • thousand throats were cheering.
  • He saw men in blue and black hurrying after the retreating Ostrogites
  • and firing. Lifted up, he saw now across the whole expanse of the hall
  • beneath the Atlas image, saw that he was being carried towards the
  • raised platform in the centre of the place. The far end of the hall was
  • already full of people running towards him. They were looking at him
  • and cheering.
  • He became aware that a bodyguard surrounded him. Active men about him
  • shouted vague orders. He saw close at hand the black moustached man in
  • yellow who had been among those who had greeted him in the public
  • theatre, shouting directions. The hall was already densely packed with
  • swaying people, the little metal gallery sagged with a shouting load, the
  • curtains at the end had been torn away, and the antechamber was revealed
  • densely crowded. He could scarcely make the man near him hear for the
  • tumult about them. "Where has Ostrog gone?" he asked.
  • The man he questioned pointed over the heads towards the lower panels
  • about the hall on the side opposite the gap. They stood open, and armed
  • men, blue clad with black sashes, were running through them and vanishing
  • into the chambers and passages beyond. It seemed to Graham that a sound
  • of firing drifted through the riot. He was carried in a staggering curve
  • across the great hall towards an opening beneath the gap.
  • He perceived men working with a sort of rude discipline to keep the crowd
  • off him, to make a space clear about him. He passed out of the hall, and
  • saw a crude, new wall rising blankly before him topped by blue sky. He
  • was swung down to his feet; someone gripped his arm and guided him. He
  • found the man in yellow close at hand. They were taking him up a narrow
  • stairway of brick, and close at hand rose the great red painted masses,
  • the cranes and levers and the still engines of the big building machine.
  • He was at the top of the steps. He was hurried across a narrow railed
  • footway, and suddenly with a vast shouting the amphitheatre of ruins
  • opened again before him. "The Master is with us! The Master! The Master!"
  • The shout swept athwart the lake of faces like a wave, broke against the
  • distant cliff of ruins, and came back in a welter of cries. "The Master
  • is on our side!"
  • Graham perceived that he was no longer encompassed by people, that he was
  • standing upon a little temporary platform of white metal, part of a
  • flimsy seeming scaffolding that laced about the great mass of the Council
  • House. Over all the huge expanse of the ruins swayed and eddied the
  • shouting people; and here and there the black banners of the
  • revolutionary societies ducked and swayed and formed rare nuclei of
  • organisation in the chaos. Up the steep stairs of wall and scaffolding by
  • which his rescuers had reached the opening in the Atlas Chamber clung a
  • solid crowd, and little energetic black figures clinging to pillars and
  • projections were strenuous to induce these congested, masses to stir.
  • Behind him, at a higher point on the scaffolding, a number of men
  • struggled upwards with the flapping folds of a huge black standard.
  • Through the yawning gap in the walls below him he could look down upon
  • the packed attentive multitudes in the Hall of the Atlas. The distant
  • flying stages to the south came out bright and vivid, brought nearer as
  • it seemed by an unusual translucency of the air. A solitary monoplane
  • beat up from the central stage as if to meet the coming aeroplanes.
  • "What has become of Ostrog?" asked Graham, and even as he spoke he saw
  • that all eyes were turned from him towards the crest of the Council House
  • building. He looked also in this direction of universal attention. For a
  • moment he saw nothing but the jagged corner of a wall, hard and clear
  • against the sky. Then in the shadow he perceived the interior of a room
  • and recognised with a start the green and white decorations of his former
  • prison. And coming quickly across this opened room and up to the very
  • verge of the cliff of the ruins came a little white clad figure followed
  • by two other smaller seeming figures in black and yellow. He heard the
  • man beside him exclaim "Ostrog," and turned to ask a question. But he
  • never did, because of the startled exclamation of another of those who
  • were with him and a lank finger suddenly pointing. He looked, and behold!
  • the monoplane that had been rising from the flying stage when last he had
  • looked in that direction, was driving towards them. The swift steady
  • flight was still novel enough to hold his attention.
  • Nearer it came, growing rapidly larger and larger, until it had swept
  • over the further edge of the ruins and into view of the dense multitudes
  • below. It drooped across the space and rose and passed overhead, rising
  • to clear the mass of the Council House, a filmy translucent shape with
  • the solitary aeronaut peering down through its ribs. It vanished beyond
  • the skyline of the ruins.
  • Graham transferred his attention to Ostrog. He was signalling with his
  • hands, and his attendants were busy breaking down the wall beside him. In
  • another moment the monoplane came into view again, a little thing far
  • away, coming round in a wide curve and going slower.
  • Then suddenly the man in yellow shouted: "What are they doing? What are
  • the people doing? Why is Ostrog left there? Why is he not captured? They
  • will lift him--the monoplane will lift him! Ah!"
  • The exclamation was echoed by a shout from the ruins. The rattling sound
  • of the green weapons drifted across the intervening gulf to Graham, and,
  • looking down, he saw a number of black and yellow uniforms running along
  • one of the galleries that lay open to the air below the promontory upon
  • which Ostrog stood. They fired as they ran at men unseen, and then
  • emerged a number of pale blue figures in pursuit. These minute fighting
  • figures had the oddest effect; they seemed as they ran like little model
  • soldiers in a toy. This queer appearance of a house cut open gave that
  • struggle amidst furniture and passages a quality of unreality. It was
  • perhaps two hundred yards away from him, and very nearly fifty above the
  • heads in the ruins below. The black and yellow men ran into an open
  • archway, and turned and fired a volley. One of the blue pursuers striding
  • forward close to the edge, flung up his arms, staggered sideways, seemed
  • to Graham's sense to hang over the edge for several seconds, and fell
  • headlong down. Graham saw him strike a projecting corner, fly out, head
  • over heels, head over heels, and vanish behind the red arm of the
  • building machine.
  • And then a shadow came between Graham and the sun. He looked up and the
  • sky was clear, but he knew the little monoplane had passed. Ostrog had
  • vanished. The man in yellow thrust before him, zealous and perspiring,
  • pointing and blatant.
  • "They are grounding!" cried the man in yellow. "They are grounding. Tell
  • the people to fire at him. Tell them to fire at him!"
  • Graham could not understand. He heard loud voices repeating these
  • enigmatical orders.
  • Suddenly he saw the prow of the monoplane come gliding over the edge of
  • the ruins and stop with a jerk. In a moment Graham understood that the
  • thing had grounded in order that Ostrog might escape by it. He saw a blue
  • haze climbing out of the gulf, perceived that the people below him were
  • now firing up at the projecting stem.
  • A man beside him cheered hoarsely, and he saw that the blue rebels had
  • gained the archway that had been contested by the men in black and
  • yellow a moment before, and were running in a continual stream along the
  • open passage.
  • And suddenly the monoplane slipped over the edge of the Council House and
  • fell like a diving swallow. It dropped, tilting at an angle of forty-five
  • degrees, so steeply that it seemed to Graham, it seemed perhaps to most
  • of those below, that it could not possibly rise again.
  • It fell so closely past him that he could see Ostrog clutching the guides
  • of the seat, with his grey hair streaming; see the white-faced aeronaut
  • wrenching over the lever that turned the machine upward. He heard the
  • apprehensive vague cry of innumerable men below.
  • Graham clutched the railing before him and gasped. The second seemed an
  • age. The lower vane of the monoplane passed within an ace of touching the
  • people, who yelled and screamed and trampled one another below.
  • And then it rose.
  • For a moment it looked as if it could not possibly clear the opposite
  • cliff, and then that it could not possibly clear the wind-wheel that
  • rotated beyond.
  • And behold! it was clear and soaring, still heeling sideways, upward,
  • upward into the wind-swept sky.
  • The suspense of the moment gave place to a fury of exasperation as the
  • swarming people realised that Ostrog had escaped them. With belated
  • activity they renewed their fire, until the rattling wove into a roar,
  • until the whole area became dim and blue and the air pungent with the
  • thin smoke of their weapons.
  • Too late! The flying machine dwindled smaller and smaller, and curved
  • about and swept gracefully downward to the flying stage from which it had
  • so lately risen. Ostrog had escaped.
  • For a while a confused babblement arose from the ruins, and then the
  • universal attention came back to Graham, perched high among the
  • scaffolding. He saw the faces of the people turned towards him, heard
  • their shouts at his rescue. From the throat of the ways came the song of
  • the revolt spreading like a breeze across that swaying sea of men.
  • The little group of men about him shouted congratulations on his escape.
  • The man in yellow was close to him, with a set face and shining eyes. And
  • the song was rising, louder and louder; tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp.
  • Slowly the realisation came of the full meaning of these things to him,
  • the perception of the swift change in his position. Ostrog, who had stood
  • beside him whenever he had faced that shouting multitude before, was
  • beyond there--the antagonist. There was no one to rule for him any
  • longer. Even the people about him, the leaders and organisers of the
  • multitude, looked to see what he would do, looked to him to act, awaited
  • his orders. He was king indeed. His puppet reign was at an end.
  • He was very intent to do the thing that was expected of him. His nerves
  • and muscles were quivering, his mind was perhaps a little confused, but
  • he felt neither fear nor anger. His hand that had been trodden upon
  • throbbed and was hot. He was a little nervous about his bearing. He knew
  • he was not afraid, but he was anxious not to seem afraid. In his former
  • life he had often been more excited in playing games of skill. He was
  • desirous of immediate action, he knew he must not think too much in
  • detail of the huge complexity of the struggle about him lest be should be
  • paralysed by the sense of its intricacy.
  • Over there those square blue shapes, the flying stages, meant Ostrog;
  • against Ostrog, who was so clear and definite and decisive, he who was so
  • vague and undecided, was fighting for the whole future of the world.
  • CHAPTER XXIII
  • GRAHAM SPEAKS HIS WORD
  • For a time the Master of the Earth was not even master of his own mind.
  • Even his will seemed a will not his own, his own acts surprised him and
  • were but a part of the confusion of strange experiences that poured
  • across his being. These things were definite, the negroes were coming,
  • Helen Wotton had warned the people of their coming, and he was Master of
  • the Earth. Each of these facts seemed struggling for complete possession
  • of his thoughts. They protruded from a background of swarming halls,
  • elevated passages, rooms jammed with ward leaders in council,
  • kinematograph and telephone rooms, and windows looking out on a seething
  • sea of marching men. The men in yellow, and men whom he fancied were
  • called Ward Leaders, were either propelling him forward or following him
  • obediently; it was hard to tell. Perhaps they were doing a little of
  • both. Perhaps some power unseen and unsuspected propelled them all. He
  • was aware that he was going to make a proclamation to the People of the
  • Earth, aware of certain grandiose phrases floating in his mind as the
  • thing he meant to say. Many little things happened, and then he found
  • himself with the man in yellow entering a little room where this
  • proclamation of his was to be made.
  • This room was grotesquely latter-day in its appointments. In the centre
  • was a bright oval lit by shaded electric lights from above. The rest was
  • in shadow, and the double finely fitting doors through which he came from
  • the swarming Hall of the Atlas made the place very still. The dead thud
  • of these as they closed behind him, the sudden cessation of the tumult in
  • which he had been living for hours, the quivering circle of light, the
  • whispers and quick noiseless movements of vaguely visible attendants in
  • the shadows, had a strange effect upon Graham. The huge ears of a
  • phonographic mechanism gaped in a battery for his words, the black eyes
  • of great photographic cameras awaited his beginning, beyond metal rods
  • and coils glittered dimly, and something whirled about with a droning
  • hum. He walked into the centre of the light, and his shadow drew together
  • black and sharp to a little blot at his feet.
  • The vague shape of the thing he meant to say was already in his mind. But
  • this silence, this isolation, the withdrawal from that contagious crowd,
  • this audience of gaping, glaring machines, had not been in his
  • anticipation. All his supports seemed withdrawn together; he seemed to
  • have dropped into this suddenly, suddenly to have discovered himself. In
  • a moment he was changed. He found that he now feared to be inadequate, he
  • feared to be theatrical, he feared the quality of his voice, the quality
  • of his wit; astonished, he turned to the man in yellow with a
  • propitiatory gesture. "For a moment," he said, "I must wait. I did not
  • think it would be like this. I must think of the thing I have to say."
  • While he was still hesitating there came an agitated messenger with news
  • that the foremost aeroplanes were passing over Madrid.
  • "What news of the flying stages?" he asked.
  • "The people of the south-west wards are ready."
  • "Ready!"
  • He turned impatiently to the blank circles of the lenses again.
  • "I suppose it must be a sort of speech. Would to God I knew certainly the
  • thing that should be said! Aeroplanes at Madrid! They must have started
  • before the main fleet.
  • "Oh! what can it matter whether I speak well or ill?" he said, and felt
  • the light grow brighter.
  • He had framed some vague sentence of democratic sentiment when suddenly
  • doubts overwhelmed him. His belief in his heroic quality and calling he
  • found had altogether lost its assured conviction. The picture of a
  • little strutting futility in a windy waste of incomprehensible
  • destinies replaced it. Abruptly it was perfectly clear to him that this
  • revolt against Ostrog was premature, foredoomed to failure, the impulse
  • of passionate inadequacy against inevitable things. He thought of that
  • swift flight of aeroplanes like the swoop of Fate towards him. He was
  • astonished that he could have seen things in any other light. In that
  • final emergency he debated, thrust debate resolutely aside, determined
  • at all costs to go through with the thing he had undertaken. And he
  • could find no word to begin. Even as he stood, awkward, hesitating,
  • with an indiscreet apology for his inability trembling on his lips,
  • came the noise of many people crying out, the running to and fro of
  • feet. "Wait," cried someone, and a door opened. Graham turned, and the
  • watching lights waned.
  • Through the open doorway he saw a slight girlish figure approaching. His
  • heart leapt. It was Helen Wotton. The man in yellow came out of the
  • nearer shadows into the circle of light.
  • "This is the girl who told us what Ostrog had done," he said.
  • She came in very quietly, and stood still, as if she did not want to
  • interrupt Graham's eloquence.... But his doubts and questionings fled
  • before her presence. He remembered the things that he had meant to say.
  • He faced the cameras again and the light about him grew brighter. He
  • turned back to her.
  • "You have helped me," he said lamely--"helped me very much.... This is
  • very difficult."
  • He paused. He addressed himself to the unseen multitudes who stared upon
  • him through those grotesque black eyes. At first he spoke slowly.
  • "Men and women of the new age," he said; "you have arisen to do battle
  • for the race!... There is no easy victory before us."
  • He stopped to gather words. He wished passionately for the gift of
  • moving speech.
  • "This night is a beginning," he said. "This battle that is coming, this
  • battle that rushes upon us to-night, is only a beginning. All your lives,
  • it may be, you must fight. Take no thought though I am beaten, though I
  • am utterly overthrown. I think I may be overthrown."
  • He found the thing in his mind too vague for words. He paused
  • momentarily, and broke into vague exhortations, and then a rush of speech
  • came upon him. Much that he said was but the humanitarian commonplace of
  • a vanished age, but the conviction of his voice touched it to vitality.
  • He stated the case of the old days to the people of the new age, to the
  • girl at his side.
  • "I come out of the past to you," he said, "with the memory of an age
  • that hoped. My age was an age of dreams--of beginnings, an age of noble
  • hopes; throughout the world we had made an end of slavery; throughout the
  • world we had spread the desire and anticipation that wars might cease,
  • that all men and women might live nobly, in freedom and peace.... So we
  • hoped in the days that are past. And what of those hopes? How is it with
  • man after two hundred years?
  • "Great cities, vast powers, a collective greatness beyond our dreams. For
  • that we did not work, and that has come. But how is it with the little
  • lives that make up this greater life? How is it with the common lives? As
  • it has ever been--sorrow and labour, lives cramped and unfulfilled, lives
  • tempted by power, tempted by wealth, and gone to waste and folly. The old
  • faiths have faded and changed, the new faith--. Is there a new faith?
  • "Charity and mercy," he floundered; "beauty and the love of beautiful
  • things--effort and devotion! Give yourselves as I would give myself--as
  • Christ gave Himself upon the Cross. It does not matter if you understand.
  • It does not matter if you seem to fail. You _know_--in the core of your
  • hearts you _know_. There is no promise, there is no security--nothing to
  • go upon but Faith. There is no faith but faith--faith which is
  • courage...."
  • Things that he had long wished to believe, he found that he believed. He
  • spoke gustily, in broken incomplete sentences, but with all his heart and
  • strength, of this new faith within him. He spoke of the greatness of
  • self-abnegation, of his belief in an immortal life of Humanity in which
  • we live and move and have our being. His voice rose and fell, and the
  • recording appliances hummed as he spoke, dim attendants watched him out
  • of the shadow....
  • His sense of that silent spectator beside him sustained his sincerity.
  • For a few glorious moments he was carried away; he felt no doubt of his
  • heroic quality, no doubt of his heroic words, he had it all straight and
  • plain. His eloquence limped no longer. And at last he made an end to
  • speaking. "Here and now," he cried, "I make my will. All that is mine in
  • the world I give to the people of the world. All that is mine in the
  • world I give to the people of the world. To all of you. I give it to you,
  • and myself I give to you. And as God wills to-night, I will live for you,
  • or I will die."
  • He ended. He found the light of his present exaltation reflected in the
  • face of the girl. Their eyes met; her eyes were swimming with tears of
  • enthusiasm.
  • "I knew," she whispered. "Oh! Father of the World--_Sire_! I knew you
  • would say these things...."
  • "I have said what I could," he answered lamely and grasped and clung to
  • her outstretched hands.
  • CHAPTER XXIV
  • WHILE THE AEROPLANES WERE COMING
  • The man in yellow was beside them. Neither had noted his coming. He was
  • saying that the south-west wards were marching. "I never expected it so
  • soon," he cried. "They have done wonders. You must send them a word to
  • help them on their way."
  • Graham stared at him absent-mindedly. Then with a start he returned to
  • his previous preoccupation about the flying stages.
  • "Yes," he said. "That is good, that is good." He weighed a message. "Tell
  • them;--well done South West."
  • He turned his eyes to Helen Wotton again. His face expressed his struggle
  • between conflicting ideas. "We must capture the flying stages," he
  • explained. "Unless we can do that they will land negroes. At all costs we
  • must prevent that."
  • He felt even as he spoke that this was not what had been in his mind
  • before the interruption. He saw a touch of surprise in her eyes. She
  • seemed about to speak and a shrill bell drowned her voice.
  • It occurred to Graham that she expected him to lead these marching
  • people, that that was the thing he had to do. He made the offer abruptly.
  • He addressed the man in yellow, but he spoke to her. He saw her face
  • respond. "Here I am doing nothing," he said.
  • "It is impossible," protested the man in yellow. "It is a fight in a
  • warren. Your place is here."
  • He explained elaborately. He motioned towards the room where Graham must
  • wait, he insisted no other course was possible. "We must know where you
  • are," he said. "At any moment a crisis may arise needing your presence
  • and decision."
  • A picture had drifted through his mind of such a vast dramatic struggle
  • as the masses in the ruins had suggested. But here was no spectacular
  • battle-field such as he imagined. Instead was seclusion--and suspense. It
  • was only as the afternoon wore on that he pieced together a truer picture
  • of the fight that was raging, inaudibly and invisibly, within four miles
  • of him, beneath the Roehampton stage. A strange and unprecedented contest
  • it was, a battle that was a hundred thousand little battles, a battle in
  • a sponge of ways and channels, fought out of sight of sky or sun under
  • the electric glare, fought out in a vast confusion by multitudes
  • untrained in arms, led chiefly by acclamation, multitudes dulled by
  • mindless labour and enervated by the tradition of two hundred years of
  • servile security against multitudes demoralised by lives of venial
  • privilege and sensual indulgence. They had no artillery, no
  • differentiation into this force or that; the only weapon on either side
  • was the little green metal carbine, whose secret manufacture and sudden
  • distribution in enormous quantities had been one of Ostrog's culminating
  • moves against the Council. Few had had any experience with this weapon,
  • many had never discharged one, many who carried it came unprovided with
  • ammunition; never was wilder firing in the history of warfare. It was a
  • battle of amateurs, a hideous experimental warfare, armed rioters
  • fighting armed rioters, armed rioters swept forward by the words and fury
  • of a song, by the tramping sympathy of their numbers, pouring in
  • countless myriads towards the smaller ways, the disabled lifts, the
  • galleries slippery with blood, the halls and passages choked with smoke,
  • beneath the flying stages, to learn there when retreat was hopeless the
  • ancient mysteries of warfare. And overhead save for a few sharpshooters
  • upon the roof spaces and for a few bands and threads of vapour that
  • multiplied and darkened towards the evening, the day was a clear
  • serenity. Ostrog it seems had no bombs at command and in all the earlier
  • phases of the battle the flying machines played no part. Not the smallest
  • cloud was there to break the empty brilliance of the sky. It seemed as
  • though it held itself vacant until the aeroplanes should come.
  • Ever and again there was news of these, drawing nearer, from this Spanish
  • town and then that, and presently from France. But of the new guns that
  • Ostrog had made and which were known to be in the city came no news in
  • spite of Graham's urgency, nor any report of successes from the dense
  • felt of fighting strands about the flying stages. Section after section
  • of the Labour-Societies reported itself assembled, reported itself
  • marching, and vanished from knowledge into the labyrinth of that warfare.
  • What was happening there? Even the busy ward leaders did not know. In
  • spite of the opening and closing of doors, the hasty messengers, the
  • ringing of bells and the perpetual clitter-clack of recording implements,
  • Graham felt isolated, strangely inactive, inoperative.
  • His isolation seemed at times the strangest, the most unexpected of all
  • the things that had happened since his awakening. It had something of
  • the quality of that inactivity that comes in dreams. A tumult, the
  • stupendous realisation of a world struggle between Ostrog and himself,
  • and then this confined quiet little room with its mouthpieces and bells
  • and broken mirror!
  • Now the door would be closed and Graham and Helen were alone together;
  • they seemed sharply marked off then from all the unprecedented world
  • storm that rushed together without, vividly aware of one another, only
  • concerned with one another. Then the door would open again, messengers
  • would enter, or a sharp bell would stab their quiet privacy, and it was
  • like a window in a well built brightly lit house flung open suddenly to a
  • hurricane. The dark hurry and tumult, the stress and vehemence of the
  • battle rushed in and overwhelmed them. They were no longer persons but
  • mere spectators, mere impressions of a tremendous convulsion. They became
  • unreal even to themselves, miniatures of personality, indescribably
  • small, and the two antagonistic realities, the only realities in being
  • were first the city, that throbbed and roared yonder in a belated frenzy
  • of defence and secondly the aeroplanes hurling inexorably towards them
  • over the round shoulder of the world.
  • There came a sudden stir outside, a running to and fro, and cries. The
  • girl stood up, speechless, incredulous.
  • Metallic voices were shouting "Victory!" Yes it was "Victory!"
  • Bursting through the curtains appeared the man in yellow, startled and
  • dishevelled with excitement, "Victory," he cried, "victory! The people
  • are winning. Ostrog's people have collapsed."
  • She rose. "Victory?"
  • "What do you mean?" asked Graham. "Tell me! _What_?"
  • "We have driven them out of the under galleries at Norwood, Streatham is
  • afire and burning wildly, and Roehampton is ours. _Ours_!--and we have
  • taken the monoplane that lay thereon."
  • A shrill bell rang. An agitated grey-headed man appeared from the room of
  • the Ward Leaders. "It is all over," he cried.
  • "What matters it now that we have Roehampton? The aeroplanes have been
  • sighted at Boulogne!"
  • "The Channel!" said the man in yellow. He calculated swiftly.
  • "Half an hour."
  • "They still have three of the flying stages," said the old man.
  • "Those guns?" cried Graham.
  • "We cannot mount them--in half an hour."
  • "Do you mean they are found?"
  • "Too late," said the old man.
  • "If we could stop them another hour!" cried the man in yellow.
  • "Nothing can stop them now," said the old man. "They have near a hundred
  • aeroplanes in the first fleet."
  • "Another hour?" asked Graham.
  • "To be so near!" said the Ward Leader. "Now that we have found
  • those guns. To be so near--. If once we could get them out upon the
  • roof spaces."
  • "How long would that take?" asked Graham suddenly.
  • "An hour--certainly."
  • "Too late," cried the Ward Leader, "too late."
  • "_Is_ it too late?" said Graham. "Even now--. An hour!"
  • He had suddenly perceived a possibility. He tried to speak calmly, but
  • his face was white. "There is are chance. You said there was a
  • monoplane--?"
  • "On the Roehampton stage, Sire."
  • "Smashed?"
  • "No. It is lying crossways to the carrier. It might be got upon the
  • guides--easily. But there is no aeronaut--."
  • Graham glanced at the two men and then at Helen. He spoke after a long
  • pause. "_We_ have no aeronauts?"
  • "None."
  • He turned suddenly to Helen. His decision was made. "I must do it."
  • "Do what?"
  • "Go to this flying stage--to this machine."
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "I am an aeronaut. After all--. Those days for which you reproached me
  • were not altogether wasted."
  • He turned to the old man in yellow. "Tell them to put it upon the
  • guides."
  • The man in yellow hesitated.
  • "What do you mean to do?" cried Helen.
  • "This monoplane--it is a chance--."
  • "You don't mean--?"
  • "To fight--yes. To fight in the air. I have thought before--. A big
  • aeroplane is a clumsy thing. A resolute man--!"
  • "But--never since flying began--" cried the man in yellow.
  • "There has been no need. But now the time has come. Tell them now--send
  • them my message--to put it upon the guides. I see now something to do. I
  • see now why I am here!"
  • The old man dumbly interrogated the man in yellow nodded, and
  • hurried out.
  • Helen made a step towards Graham. Her face was white. "But, Sire!--How
  • can one fight? You will be killed."
  • "Perhaps. Yet, not to do it--or to let some one else attempt it--."
  • "You will be killed," she repeated.
  • "I've said my word. Do you not see? It may save--London!"
  • He stopped, he could speak no more, he swept the alternative aside by a
  • gesture, and they stood looking at one another.
  • They were both clear that he must go. There was no step back from these
  • towering heroisms.
  • Her eyes brimmed with tears. She came towards him with a curious movement
  • of her hands, as though she felt her way and could not see; she seized
  • his hand and kissed it.
  • "To wake," she cried, "for this!"
  • He held her clumsily for a moment, and kissed the hair of her bowed head,
  • and then thrust her away, and turned towards the man in yellow.
  • He could not speak. The gesture of his arm said "Onward."
  • CHAPTER XXV
  • THE COMING OF THE AEROPLANES
  • Two men in pale blue were lying in the irregular line that stretched
  • along the edge of the captured Roehampton stage from end to end, grasping
  • their carbines and peering into the shadows of the stage called Wimbledon
  • Park. Now and then they spoke to one another. They spoke the mutilated
  • English of their class and period. The fire of the Ostrogites had
  • dwindled and ceased, and few of the enemy had been seen for some time.
  • But the echoes of the fight that was going on now far below in the lower
  • galleries of that stage, came every now and then between the staccato of
  • shots from the popular side. One of these men was describing to the other
  • how he had seen a man down below there dodge behind a girder, and had
  • aimed at a guess and hit him cleanly as he dodged too far. "He's down
  • there still," said the marksman. "See that little patch. Yes. Between
  • those bars."
  • A few yards behind them lay a dead stranger, face upward to the sky, with
  • the blue canvas of his jacket smouldering in a circle about the neat
  • bullet hole on his chest. Close beside him a wounded man, with a leg
  • swathed about, sat with an expressionless face and watched the progress
  • of that burning. Behind them, athwart the carrier lay the captured
  • monoplane.
  • "I can't see him _now_," said the second man in a tone of provocation.
  • The marksman became foul-mouthed and high-voiced in his earnest
  • endeavour to make things plain. And suddenly, interrupting him, came a
  • noisy shouting from the substage.
  • "What's going on now?" he said, and raised himself on one arm to survey
  • the stairheads in the central groove of the stage. A number of blue
  • figures were coming up these, and swarming across the stage.
  • "We don't want all these fools," said his friend. "They only crowd up and
  • spoil shots. What are they after?"
  • "Ssh!--they're shouting something."
  • The two men listened. The new-comers had crowded densely about the
  • machine. Three Ward Leaders, conspicuous by their black mantles and
  • badges, clambered into the body and appeared above it. The rank and file
  • flung themselves upon the vans, gripping hold of the edges, until the
  • entire outline of the thing was manned, in some places three deep. One of
  • the marksmen knelt up. "They're putting it on the carrier--that's what
  • they're after."
  • He rose to his feet, his friend rose also. "What's the good?" said his
  • friend. "We've got no aeronauts."
  • "That's what they're doing anyhow." He looked at his rifle, looked at the
  • struggling crowd, and suddenly turned to the wounded man. "Mind these,
  • mate," he said, handing his carbine and cartridge belt; and in a moment
  • he was running towards the monoplane. For a quarter of an hour he was
  • lugging, thrusting, shouting and heeding shouts, and then the thing was
  • done, and he stood with a multitude of others cheering their own
  • achievement. By this time he knew, what indeed everyone in the city knew,
  • that the Master, raw learner though he was, intended to fly this machine
  • himself, was coming even now to take control of it, would let no other
  • man attempt it.
  • "He who takes the greatest danger, he who bears the heaviest burden,
  • that man is King," so the Master was reported to have spoken. And even as
  • this man cheered, and while the beads of sweat still chased one another
  • from the disorder of his hair, he heard the thunder of a greater tumult,
  • and in fitful snatches the beat and impulse of the revolutionary song. He
  • saw through a gap in the people that a thick stream of heads still poured
  • up the stairway. "The Master is coming," shouted voices, "the Master is
  • coming," and the crowd about him grew denser and denser. He began to
  • thrust himself towards the central groove. "The Master is coming!" "The
  • Sleeper, the Master!" "God and the Master!" roared the voices.
  • And suddenly quite close to him were the black uniforms of the
  • revolutionary guard, and for the first and last time in his life he saw
  • Graham, saw him quite nearly. A tall, dark man in a flowing black robe he
  • was, with a white, resolute face and eyes fixed steadfastly before him; a
  • man who for all the little things about him had neither ears nor eyes nor
  • thoughts....
  • For all his days that man remembered the passing of Graham's bloodless
  • face. In a moment it had gone and he was fighting in the swaying crowd. A
  • lad weeping with terror thrust against him, pressing towards the
  • stairways, yelling "Clear for the start, you fools!" The bell that
  • cleared the flying stage became a loud unmelodious clanging.
  • With that clanging in his ears Graham drew near the monoplane, marched
  • into the shadow of its tilting wing. He became aware that a number of
  • people about him were offering to accompany him, and waved their offers
  • aside. He wanted to think how one started the engine. The bell clanged
  • faster and faster, and the feet of the retreating people roared faster
  • and louder. The man in yellow was assisting him to mount through the ribs
  • of the body. He clambered into the aeronaut's place, fixing himself very
  • carefully and deliberately. What was it? The man in yellow was pointing
  • to two small flying machines driving upward in the southern sky. No doubt
  • they were looking for the coming aeroplanes. That--presently--the thing
  • to do now was to start. Things were being shouted at him, questions,
  • warnings. They bothered him. He wanted to think about the machine, to
  • recall every item of his previous experience. He waved the people from
  • him, saw the man in yellow dropping off through the ribs, saw the crowd
  • cleft down the line of the girders by his gesture.
  • For a moment he was motionless, staring at the levers, the wheel by which
  • the engine shifted, and all the delicate appliances of which he knew so
  • little. His eye caught a spirit level with the bubble towards him, and he
  • remembered something, spent a dozen seconds in swinging the engine
  • forward until the bubble floated in the centre of the tube. He noted that
  • the people were not shouting, knew they watched his deliberation. A
  • bullet smashed on the bar above his head. Who fired? Was the line clear
  • of people? He stood up to see and sat down again.
  • In another second the propeller was spinning and he was rushing down the
  • guides. He gripped the wheel and swung the engine back to lift the stem.
  • Then it was the people shouted. In a moment he was throbbing with the
  • quiver of the engine, and the shouts dwindled swiftly behind, rushed down
  • to silence. The wind whistled over the edges of the screen, and the world
  • sank away from him very swiftly.
  • Throb, throb, throb--throb, throb, throb; up he drove. He fancied
  • himself free of all excitement, felt cool and deliberate. He lifted the
  • stem still more, opened one valve on his left wing and swept round and
  • up. He looked down with a steady head, and up. One of the Ostrogite
  • monoplanes was driving across his course, so that he drove obliquely
  • towards it and would pass below it at a steep angle. Its little
  • aeronauts were peering down at him. What did they mean to do? His mind
  • became active. One, he saw held a weapon pointing, seemed prepared to
  • fire. What did they think he meant to do? In a moment he understood
  • their tactics, and his resolution was taken. His momentary lethargy was
  • past. He opened two more valves to his left, swung round, end on to this
  • hostile machine, closed his valves, and shot straight at it, stem and
  • wind-screen shielding him from the shot. They tilted a little as if to
  • clear him. He flung up his stem.
  • Throb, throb, throb--pause--throb, throb--he set his teeth, his face into
  • an involuntary grimace, and crash! He struck it! He struck upward beneath
  • the nearer wing.
  • Very slowly the wing of his antagonist seemed to broaden as the impetus
  • of his blow turned it up. He saw the full breadth of it and then it slid
  • downward out of his sight.
  • He felt his stem going down, his hands tightened on the levers, whirled
  • and rammed the engine back. He felt the jerk of a clearance, the nose of
  • the machine jerked upward steeply, and for a moment he seemed to be
  • lying on his back. The machine was reeling and staggering, it seemed to
  • be dancing on its screw. He made a huge effort, hung for a moment on the
  • levers, and slowly the engine came forward again. He was driving upward
  • but no longer so steeply. He gasped for a moment and flung himself at the
  • levers again. The wind whistled about him. One further effort and he was
  • almost level. He could breathe. He turned his head for the first time to
  • see what had become of his antagonists. Turned back to the levers for a
  • moment and looked again. For a moment he could have believed they were
  • annihilated. And then he saw between the two stages to the east was a
  • chasm, and down this something, a slender edge, fell swiftly and
  • vanished, as a sixpence falls down a crack.
  • At first he did not understand, and then a wild joy possessed him. He
  • shouted at the top of his voice, an inarticulate shout, and drove higher
  • and higher up the sky. Throb, throb, throb, pause, throb, throb, throb.
  • "Where was the other?" he thought. "They too--." As he looked round the
  • empty heavens he had a momentary fear that this second machine had risen
  • above him, and then he saw it alighting on the Norwood stage. They had
  • meant shooting. To risk being rammed headlong two thousand feet in the
  • air was beyond their latter-day courage....
  • For a little while he circled, then swooped in a steep descent towards
  • the westward stage. Throb throb throb, throb throb throb. The twilight
  • was creeping on apace, the smoke from the Streatham stage that had been
  • so dense and dark, was now a pillar of fire, and all the laced curves of
  • the moving ways and the translucent roofs and domes and the chasms
  • between the buildings were glowing softly now, lit by the tempered
  • radiance of the electric light that the glare of the day overpowered. The
  • three efficient stages that the Ostrogites held--for Wimbledon Park was
  • useless because of the fire from Roehampton, and Streatham was a
  • furnace--were glowing with guide lights for the coming aeroplanes. As he
  • swept over the Roehampton stage he saw the dark masses of the people
  • thereon. He heard a clap of frantic cheering, heard a bullet from the
  • Wimbledon Park stage tweet through the air, and went beating up above the
  • Surrey wastes. He felt a breath of wind from the southwest, and lifted
  • his westward wing as he had learnt to do, and so drove upward heeling
  • into the rare swift upper air. Whirr, whirr, whirr.
  • Up he drove and up, to that pulsating rhythm, until the country beneath
  • was blue and indistinct, and London spread like a little map traced in
  • light, like the mere model of a city near the brim of the horizon. The
  • southwest was a sky of sapphire over the shadowy rim of the world, and
  • ever as he drove upward the multitude of stars increased.
  • And behold! In the southward, low down and glittering swiftly nearer,
  • were two little patches of nebulous light. And then two more, and then a
  • glow of swiftly driving shapes. Presently he could count them. There were
  • four and twenty. The first fleet of aeroplanes had come! Beyond appeared
  • a yet greater glow.
  • He swept round in a half circle, staring at this advancing fleet. It flew
  • in a wedge-like shape, a triangular flight of gigantic phosphorescent
  • shapes sweeping nearer through the lower air. He made a swift calculation
  • of their pace, and spun the little wheel that brought the engine forward.
  • He touched a lever and the throbbing effort of the engine ceased. He
  • began to fall, fell swifter and swifter. He aimed at the apex of the
  • wedge. He dropped like a stone through the whistling air. It seemed
  • scarce a second from that soaring moment before he struck the foremost
  • aeroplane.
  • No man of all that black multitude saw the coming of his fate, no man
  • among them dreamt of the hawk that struck downward upon him out of the
  • sky. Those who were not limp in the agonies of air-sickness, were craning
  • their black necks and staring to see the filmy city that was rising out
  • of the haze, the rich and splendid city to which "Massa Boss" had brought
  • their obedient muscles. Bright teeth gleamed and the glossy faces shone.
  • They had heard of Paris. They knew they were to have lordly times among
  • the poor white trash.
  • Suddenly Graham hit them.
  • He had aimed at the body of the aeroplane, but at the very last instant a
  • better idea had flashed into his mind. He twisted about and struck near
  • the edge of the starboard wing with all his accumulated weight. He was
  • jerked back as he struck. His prow went gliding across its smooth expanse
  • towards the rim. He felt the forward rush of the huge fabric sweeping him
  • and his monoplane along with it, and for a moment that seemed an age he
  • could not tell what was happening. He heard a thousand throats yelling,
  • and perceived that his machine was balanced on the edge of the gigantic
  • float, and driving down, down; glanced over his shoulder and saw the
  • backbone of the aeroplane and the opposite float swaying up. He had a
  • vision through the ribs of sliding chairs, staring faces, and hands
  • clutching at the tilting guide bars. The fenestrations in the further
  • float flashed open as the aeronaut tried to right her. Beyond, he saw a
  • second aeroplane leaping steeply to escape the whirl of its heeling
  • fellow. The broad area of swaying wings seemed to jerk upward. He felt he
  • had dropped clear, that the monstrous fabric, clean overturned, hung like
  • a sloping wall above him.
  • He did not clearly understand that he had struck the side float of the
  • aeroplane and slipped off, but he perceived that he was flying free on
  • the down glide and rapidly nearing earth. What had he done? His heart
  • throbbed like a noisy engine in his throat and for a perilous instant he
  • could not move his levers because of the paralysis of his hands. He
  • wrenched the levers to throw his engine back, fought for two seconds
  • against the weight of it, felt himself righting, driving horizontally,
  • set the engine beating again.
  • He looked upward and saw two aeroplanes glide shouting far overhead,
  • looked back, and saw the main body of the fleet opening out and rushing
  • upward and outward; saw the one he had struck fall edgewise on and strike
  • like a gigantic knife-blade along the wind-wheels below it.
  • He put down his stern and looked again. He drove up heedless of his
  • direction as he watched. He saw the wind-vanes give, saw the huge fabric
  • strike the earth, saw its downward vanes crumple with the weight of its
  • descent, and then the whole mass turned over and smashed, upside down,
  • upon the sloping wheels. Then from the heaving wreckage a thin tongue of
  • white fire licked up towards the zenith. He was aware of a huge mass
  • flying through the air towards him, and turned upwards just in time to
  • escape the charge--if it was a charge--of a second aeroplane. It whirled
  • by below, sucked him down a fathom, and nearly turned him over in the
  • gust of its close passage.
  • He became aware of three others rushing towards him, aware of the urgent
  • necessity of beating above them. Aeroplanes were all about him, circling
  • wildly to avoid him, as it seemed. They drove past him, above, below,
  • eastward and westward. Far away to the westward was the sound of a
  • collision, and two falling flares. Far away to the southward a second
  • squadron was coming. Steadily he beat upward. Presently all the
  • aeroplanes were below him, but for a moment he doubted the height he had
  • of them, and did not swoop again. And then he came down upon a second
  • victim and all its load of soldiers saw him coming. The big machine
  • heeled and swayed as the fear-maddened men scrambled to the stern for
  • their weapons. A score of bullets sung through the air, and there flashed
  • a star in the thick glass wind-screen that protected him. The aeroplane
  • slowed and dropped to foil his stroke, and dropped too low. Just in time
  • he saw the wind-wheels of Bromley hill rushing up towards him, and spun
  • about and up as the aeroplane he had chased crashed among them. All its
  • voices wove into a felt of yelling. The great fabric seemed to be
  • standing on end for a second among the heeling and splintering vans, and
  • then it flew to pieces. Huge splinters came flying through the air, its
  • engines burst like shells. A hot rush of flame shot overhead into the
  • darkling sky.
  • "_Two_!" he cried, with a bomb from overhead bursting as it fell, and
  • forthwith he was beating up again. A glorious exhilaration possessed him
  • now, a giant activity. His troubles about humanity, about his inadequacy,
  • were gone for ever. He was a man in battle rejoicing in his power.
  • Aeroplanes seemed radiating from him in every direction, intent only upon
  • avoiding him, the yelling of their packed passengers came in short gusts
  • as they swept by. He chose his third quarry, struck hastily and did but
  • turn it on edge. It escaped him, to smash against the tall cliff of
  • London wall. Flying from that impact he skimmed the darkling ground so
  • nearly he could see a frightened rabbit bolting up a slope. He jerked up
  • steeply, and found himself driving over south London with the air about
  • him vacant. To the right of him a wild riot of signal rockets from the
  • Ostrogites banged tumultuously in the sky. To the south the wreckage of
  • half a dozen air ships flamed, and east and west and north they fled
  • before him. They drove away to the east and north, and went about in the
  • south, for they could not pause in the air. In their present confusion
  • any attempt at evolution would have meant disastrous collisions.
  • He passed two hundred feet or so above the Roehampton stage. It was black
  • with people and noisy with their frantic shouting. But why was the
  • Wimbledon Park stage black and cheering, too? The smoke and flame of
  • Streatham now hid the three further stages. He curved about and rose to
  • see them and the northern quarters. First came the square masses of
  • Shooter's Hill into sight, from behind the smoke, lit and orderly with
  • the aeroplane that had landed and its disembarking negroes. Then came
  • Blackheath, and then under the corner of the reek the Norwood stage. On
  • Blackheath no aeroplane had landed. Norwood was covered by a swarm of
  • little figures running to and fro in a passionate confusion. Why?
  • Abruptly he understood. The stubborn defence of the flying stages was
  • over, the people were pouring into the under-ways of these last
  • strongholds of Ostrog's usurpation. And then, from far away on the
  • northern border of the city, full of glorious import to him, came a
  • sound, a signal, a note of triumph, the leaden thud of a gun. His lips
  • fell apart, his face was disturbed with emotion.
  • He drew an immense breath. "They win," he shouted to the empty air; "the
  • people win!" The sound of a second gun came like an answer. And then he
  • saw the monoplane on Blackheath was running down its guides to launch. It
  • lifted clean and rose. It shot up into the air, driving straight
  • southward and away from him.
  • In an instant it came to him what this meant. It must needs be Ostrog
  • in flight. He shouted and dropped towards it. He had the momentum of
  • his elevation and fell slanting down the air and very swiftly. It rose
  • steeply at his approach. He allowed for its velocity and drove
  • straight upon it.
  • It suddenly became a mere flat edge, and behold! he was past it, and
  • driving headlong down with all the force of his futile blow.
  • He was furiously angry. He reeled the engine back along its shaft and
  • went circling up. He saw Ostrog's machine beating up a spiral before
  • him. He rose straight towards it, won above it by virtue of the impetus
  • of his swoop and by the advantage and weight of a man. He dropped
  • headlong--dropped and missed again! As he rushed past he saw the face of
  • Ostrog's aeronaut confident and cool and in Ostrog's attitude a wincing
  • resolution. Ostrog was looking steadfastly away from him--to the south.
  • He realized with a gleam of wrath how bungling his flight must be. Below
  • he saw the Croydon hills. He jerked upward and once more he gained on
  • his enemy.
  • He glanced over his shoulder and his attention was arrested. The
  • eastward stage, the one on Shooter's Hill, appeared to lift; a flash
  • changing to a tall grey shape, a cowled figure of smoke and dust, jerked
  • into the air. For a moment this cowled figure stood motionless, dropping
  • huge masses of metal from its shoulders, and then it began to uncoil a
  • dense head of smoke. The people had blown it up, aeroplane and all! As
  • suddenly a second flash and grey shape sprang up from the Norwood stage.
  • And even as he stared at this came a dead report; and the air wave of the
  • first explosion struck him. He was flung up and sideways.
  • For a moment his monoplane fell nearly edgewise with her nose down, and
  • seemed to hesitate whether to overset altogether. He stood on his
  • wind-shield, wrenching the wheel that swayed up over his head. And then
  • the shock of the second explosion took his machine sideways.
  • He found himself clinging to one of the ribs of his machine, and the
  • air was blowing past him and _upward_. He seemed to be hanging quite
  • still in the air, with the wind blowing up past him. It occurred to him
  • that he was falling. Then he was sure that he was falling. He could not
  • look down.
  • He found himself recapitulating with incredible swiftness all that had
  • happened since his awakening, the days of doubt, the days of Empire, and
  • at last the tumultuous discovery of Ostrog's calculated treachery.
  • The vision had a quality of utter unreality. Who was he? Why was he
  • holding so tightly with his hands? Why could he not let go? In such
  • a fall as this countless dreams have ended. But in a moment he
  • would wake....
  • His thoughts ran swifter and swifter. He wondered if he should see Helen
  • again. It seemed so unreasonable that he should not see her again. It
  • _must_ be a dream! Yet surely he would meet her. She at least was real.
  • She was real. He would wake and meet her.
  • Although he could not look at it, he was suddenly aware that the earth
  • was very near.
  • THE END.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Sleeper Awakes, by H.G. Wells
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SLEEPER AWAKES ***
  • ***** This file should be named 12163-8.txt or 12163-8.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net/1/2/1/6/12163/
  • Produced by Paul Murray, Mary Meehan and the Online Distributed
  • Proofreading Team.
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.net/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
  • donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's
  • eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
  • compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
  • Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
  • the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
  • VERSIONS based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
  • new filenames and etext numbers.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
  • EBooks posted prior to November 2003, with eBook numbers BELOW #10000,
  • are filed in directories based on their release date. If you want to
  • download any of these eBooks directly, rather than using the regular
  • search system you may utilize the following addresses and just
  • download by the etext year.
  • http://www.gutenberg.net/etext06
  • (Or /etext 05, 04, 03, 02, 01, 00, 99,
  • 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90)
  • EBooks posted since November 2003, with etext numbers OVER #10000, are
  • filed in a different way. The year of a release date is no longer part
  • of the directory path. The path is based on the etext number (which is
  • identical to the filename). The path to the file is made up of single
  • digits corresponding to all but the last digit in the filename. For
  • example an eBook of filename 10234 would be found at:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net/1/0/2/3/10234
  • or filename 24689 would be found at:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net/2/4/6/8/24689
  • An alternative method of locating eBooks:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net/GUTINDEX.ALL